r #^ ^t iUe ®bw%ta| ^ %: PRINCETON, N. J. % Presented by Vr'o-^"T\-?Av^\ V(:AvvS)vA<(2> ^"IDTX), BS 244^8 .86 S3 1868 Scott, W. A. 1813-1885. The centurions of the Gospe •,i i'C-i>-*^''- THE Centurions of the Gospel : WITH DISC0Ui:6ES ON "THE CHOICE OP A PROFESSION," "OUR RESPONSIBILITY FOR OUR FELLOW MEN," AND THE "PIETY AND PATRIOTLS.M OF PRAYING FOR OUR RULERS." BY/ EEV. W. A. SCOTT, D. D., PASTOR OF TUB FOKTY-SECOXI) STREET PUESBYTEKIAN CUURCU, N£W YORK. SECOXD EDITION-. NEW YORK: AXSON I). F. RANDOLPH, 710 BROADWAY. 1808. Kntcrod ftccording to Act of Coii^toss, in tlio year 1867, ijy ki:v. w. a. SCOTT, 1). n, In the Ck-rU^s Ollico of tlio Disliicl Court of tho Uuitod States for the Bouthcni District oi New Yurk. PEEFAGE A m:w edition of the following Discourses being call(;d for, it lias seemed Ix^st to change the title from ^' The Church in the Army; or the Four Centurions," to one tliat expresses more satis fVu^torily tlie nature of the volume. The aim of these Discourses is, to show that tlie Gospel is suited for all sorts of men in all the circinnstanccs of lift'. The Four ClenturionH are selrctcd as ('xami)l('S from the military pro- fession, and the other Discourses are an attempt to ilhistrate great Bibhi principh'S, and teach h^ssons and iMCulcate duti(^s which are of the givatcst iniportanc(r in all tlMM'.allings or pnrsuits of life, how>?/?;^/>7/^?rZ from letters and journals that Avere never written with any thought of their i)ublication. They have said, after looking over such works : " If PREFACE. Vll this is tlie piety of soldiers, and the way it is to be regarded, we want none of it." It is, there- fore, witli great phuisun; we are able to say that the biograj)]iical sketches of General Ilavelock, that have fallen under our observation, are of a decidedly healthful and manly tone. He was "every inch a soldier and every inch a Cluis- tian." No man in the British Army possessed more common sense, persevering mental applica- tion, or great(?r moni,! and physical courage. His life seems to us likely to make a favorable impression on the Army and Navy, and on the educated young men of our day generally. We lik(3 it just for the same reason that we would have our Sabbath-school children earnestly en- gaged in committing the Creed, the Ten Com- mandments, the Lord's Prayer, the Psalms, and the Gospel of John, to memory, rather than that they should distract and weaken their tender minds, by fictions and the hoi-house literature that it is so much the fashion of our day to "cram" into our Sunday-schools. We can, however, recommend, and with much confidence, such works as the "Life of Ilavelock," Cecil's "Remains," Scott's " Force of Truth," Wilber- force's "Practical View," Henry's "Anxious Inquirer," and Dr. A. Alexander's "Thoughts on Religious Experience." Vm PEEFACE. It will be seen in the course of this volume also, that the author had an intimate acquaintance with the habits and sentiments of General Andrew Jackson, of Tennessee, being his Pastor for some years after he retired from Washing- ton, and that he believes he was ''the most reli- gious President we have ever had." This volume is a labor of love. Born amid the scenes of frontier life, and familiar with Indian wars from youth, and having consider- able knowledge of the American Army, and having many personal friends among its olRcers,' this work has been long meditated by the author. One of his earliest friends, whose name is em- balmed in his heart, is an officer in the Army. We have known him now for a lifetime, until he is near the head of his profession, and we hesi- tate not to say, that he is one of the most con- sistently pious and intelligent men we have ever known. But as he yet lives to adorn his profes- sion, we forbear to publish his name, for we know that his feelings are as delicate as his cour- age is exalted. We remember distinctly his religious habits in the camp and in the barracks. We know that it was his custom, whenever cir- cumstances would at all permit it, to read a chapter every day in the Bible, with Dr. Thomas Scott's notes, and to write out a synopsis of PEEFACE. IX them ; and on the Lord' s day, if no chaplain was present, he conducted a religious service for his men. In these Discourses, I have not sought novel- ties, but to present the Truth, which is in order to salvation as it lies in the brief histories under examination. After years of thought and read- ing, it is not easy to analyze one' s store of knowledge, and name with absolute accuracy the writers to whom we may be indebted, in one way or another, for facts and illustrations. I have consulted with some diligence, and, as far as I deemed it needful for my purpose, have exhausted such commentators in French, Latin, and Greek, and partially in German, as well as in English, as I have had access to, or have con- sidered worth the time required for studying them. The historical facts of the volume are taken from most reliable sources, and I hope will be found to be correct. It is, also, but justice to say, that while the authors and commentaries on the Scriptures, whom I have designed to honor in this acknowledgment just made, or made in the progress of the volume itself, have embraced the lives of the warriors of the Bible, and have presented quite extensive notes on the Pour CENTURioivrs, of whose conversion we have some account, as I think, in the New Testament ; still, X PREFACE. as far as my information extends, there is no work like this volume — no worTi that attempts to give a commentary, on the character and conversion to Christ of the Roman Centurions, as written for us by the sacred penmen, iltus- irated by reference to the lives of pious men in the military prof ess ion of modern times. The author' s great aim in gratefully recording the power of the Gospel, and making mention of the evidences of true piety, furnished by the Centurions, and by soldiers of more recent times, is to awaken in the breasts of his young country- men the conviction, that eminent piety is not a real hindrance to success, in any of the honor- able pursuits of life, but is a decided advantage in them all, and that even in the military profes- sion, it is a Bible truth, that true religion is the way to make "'the best of both icorlds.^'' His prayer for young men, seeing "they are strong," is that they may be "as plants of the Lord, grown up in their youth," and it is onlj^ the more earnest, because the times are evil, and the night of death approaches when no man can work. W. A. gCOTT. New York, December, 1867. CONTENTS. PAQt; Introdcction 19 Ruskin's prophecy — " Sons of war " may be subjects of " the Prince of Peace," when war is justifiable, "which is rarely the case — Rev. Mr. Boardman's *• Higher Life" — General Ilalleck's answer to Dr. Waylaud — Jehu the Baptist style of John Knox — Tlie Gospel is Peace. I. — The Ckmlrion of Capkrxacm 25 1. The Coming to Jesus. — The time of this miracle — The scene of it -The site of Ctiperuaum — Fate of the city — The Centu- rion was a lloinan officer — Why he c^me to Jesus — Mattliew and Luke reconciled— Proverbial liberality of soldiers and sailors — The sick *' servant" — His disease. IL — The Ckxturiox of Capernaum continued 38 2. The peculiar Excellence of his Faith. — Our Lord's prompt reply to the call for help — We must trust our senses — Faith, what is it? — Our Lord's wonder at the greatness of the Cen- turion's faith — How it was distinguished — He had been brought up in heathenism — He was a soldier — The mihtary profession has given many illustrious examples of piety — Havelock. Ill —The Cknturion of Capernaum continued 49 3. Evidences of this CenturioiCs Faith. — Was kind to his servant — Remarkable completeness of this soldier's character — Re- formation not always a true conversion — " Havelock'' s saints " Chrisuaiiity is not built out of the ruins of liumanity, manhood or civilization — Insubordination a crying evil in our day — The Centurion's remarkable humility : " I am not worthy " — Did not assume with Anglo-Saxon-like pride to be better than any other people — He makes a true soldier's brief, prompt profes- sion of his faith — Mistaken ideas of true manliness or indepen- dence of character — Nothing " fawning " or corrupt in this soldier's humility — Our Lord not only granted his request, but entered into his heart — His faith distinguished for its inde- pendence of the senses— And also because it disregarded his Xll CONTENTS. Roman prejudices against the Jews— His faith assumed a mili- tary form. IV. — The Cknturion of Capernaum continued 60 4. TJiis Roman officer still preaching the Gospel. — First, here we have our Lord's perfect humanity — Secondly, we should not indulge in general and indiscriminating charges upon classes and professions^ races or callings — Xot necessary for soldiers and sailors to swear, even if the Army in Flanders did — Havclock's example — His prayer-meeting in the heathen temple of Shivey Dagoon — A picture wanted of his Rangoon pagoda — Lord Bentick's testimony in favor of Ilavelock and his '■'saints"— Some professioiis are more favorable than others, but none are excused from being pious — Peter no doubt a saint in heaven, whether he was a pope or not — Arnold's treachery does not prove "Washington a hypocrite — Tldrdly, let us be more charitable — The Gospel kingdom is open to all nations — Fourthly, this miracle a clear reality — Fifthly, dis- advantages enhance the value of success — Sixthly, our Lord estimates a man according to his faith — Seventhly, natural for the Centurion's faith to run in the channel of his profession — Bis military science taught him faith in an invisible presence — So the "wise men" and the "shepherds" were led to Christ in their own ciilling— 77eans are to be provided, and then everything done we ~ can do, according to God's own appointed ways, to make them cftectual — Case of savage nations illustrated — 3. Reasons why we should strive to save our fellow men. Our own expe- rience — We all have influence — If converted to God they are happy — This is the way also to promote our own happiness — Great eftbrts called for in behalf of our new States and cities, and for our soldiers and sea-going men. REFLECTIONS. 1. Have we realized what it is for a soul to be saved or lost? — 2. If our fellow men now perish, it will be after the most pre- ciousi provisions have been made for their salvation — 3. It is someining to us that they are ready to be slain —We are under tremendous obligations — Parents, teachers, officers appealed to. XIII. — Thk Piety and Patriotism of Praying for our Civil Rulers 351 Political fathers under the same rule as our spiritual and natural fathers — The apostle's teaching on this subject— God still Su- preme Governor — True religion the basis of all order and vir- tue—men prone to extremes — Xo union of Christ with Ctesar — The powers that be are ordained of God — Illustrations— It is an act of true patriotism and of the most disinterested loyalty to pray for our civil rulers — Hebrews and early Christians did so— Fear of God and a proper regard for man are found to- gether — Good rulers desire the prayers of the pious— The Church of God has always taught and practised this duty — Va- rious authorities cited from Barrow, Chrysostom, Origen and others — The Catechism teaches it — Common charity requires XVlll CONTEl^TS. it — The hnimn prone to carry us astray — Onr civil rulers need oiir sympatliy and prayers — Their post is ditVu-iilt and daii.i;er- ous — They aie a part of ourselves -Our welfare depends upon them— Prayer is :ui essential part of every man's piety. XIV.— CniiiSTiAN Soi.oiKr>s 305 Colonel Gardiner — His luavery, patriotism, piety and death — Captain Vicars — llis activity as a Christian, noble beai-ini^ in battle and death at Sebastopol — Marshal Snwarrow — riussia's greatest general — llis lieroisnj, devotion and inlluence ONCr his soldiers — General llavelock— Sum of his character as a soldier and Christian — fiOni;; waiting for his work — Well done at last — His vietoiii's I)i!igenee in accpiirin;^ knowledge — A noble example lor young oiHeers — The military profession unt in itself sinful — lI;'.velock\s characft-r and Christian death — Gene- ral Jackson — riiny's reinaik— Autiior's oi)p()rtnn!ty to study his character Wali)ol(''s ruK' a failure — (ieneral Jackson's uioral courage and estimate of it in ])ublic men — His attain- ments — Uis letters — Devoiioti to his friends —His early reli- gious education — Never altogether lost — Becomes a commuu? ing church member — The author his pastor at the Hermitage — IHs attendance at the Lord's supper — Judge Gayarre's sketch — Dilliculty of doing justice to his memory — Coljbett's estimate of General Jackson — His fame will grow greener in coming years— Oft allusions to the help of Providence — His habit of reading the Bible — His pious reflections oa the death of a friend and his own failing health — Dr. Esselman's letter describing his death — The closing scene. XV. — TuK Army of tiik Dkad still Spkakino 425 Tiie holy catholic Church — Every age and generation connected — Aim of this volume— All great men pious — Hlustrations from Homer's heroes — God works by lit agents — Alexander's love for the Iliad — Domestic purity and attachment not inconsistent with the loftiest heroism — The Centurions— Havelock — Jack- son — Such men are to be imitated -Faith in Christ necessary — Our religion must be confessed — Soldiers must try to do good — Catholicity of feeling characteristic of brave men — Havelock not a close commmiionist — Unfavorable circuin- Btanccs may be overcome — Conclusion. introduction: SOLDIERS MAY BE PIOUS. •'Every inch a soldier and every inch a Christian." — Loud Hakdinge's Ellogt ON Gen. Havklock. From an intimate acquaintance with Ccneral Jackf-on's habits and sentiments, I have no doubt the Uev. Dr. Wilson was correct in sayinj,', that "General Jack.son, thou.t,'h not a re;,'ular piofessor of re!i;4ion while actiog President, was, however, the most religious President we have ever had." — Tun Author. "For many a year to come, the sword of every rigliteoiis nation must be whetted to save or to iiubdiio; uor will it be by patience of others' sufferintr, but by the ofturiug of your own, that you will ever draw nearer to the time when the great change shall pass upon the iron of the earth ; when men shall beat their swords into jdoughshares, and their spears into prun- ing liooks; neither shall they learn war any more."* If ]Mr. Huskin is correct, war is to be the trade of man for ages to come. Alas, alas! that it should be so. But since it is so, and has been so from the begiiiniug, and we fear will so continue for ages to come, it is proper for us to consider brielly the question : Can the son of wnr^ he a child qf God? Is it pcssilh for a man of Mood to he a sincere follower of the Prince of Pence? Various observations and facts are given in this volume as illus- trations of what kind of an answer should be given to this question. Historically, we know that neither tiie exclusive * Ruskin's Lectures, p. 250. XX INTRODUCTION". divine right ot kings, nor the doctrine of passive obedience and non-resistance even to tyrann5', has been able to prevent v.-ars in past ages. And until human nature shall be vastly changed from what it is, we do not *ee that wars will cease out of the earth. And as long as wars exist, so long will there be soldiers. AVhether war is the natural state of man or not, certain it is, tliat as it has been, so it is now, and so it will be to the end of our present economy. Does Christianity then absolutely forbid all wars? Is it impossible for a Christian man to en^-age iu war without violating his principles? That most wars are un- lawful and wholly nnjustifiable, we are ready to admit. But all wars are not alil:e. Peace and war are noble or otherwise, according to their kind and occasion. And even as to wicked and unholy wars, are not tax-payers just as much involved in their sinfulness as tlie officers and men of the army and navy that are actually engaged in carrying them on ? And if all wars are sinful, how is it that God himself ever commanded his chosen people to go to war ? Jehovah is never so straitened for means to carry forward his purposes as to do evil tl'at good may come out of it, Never. And moreover, if v,-ar is always and essentially a moral wrong, how are we to look npon the wars of Abraham, Joshua, Gideon, Moses and David? And what are we to say of the acknow- ledged piety of Yicars, Hammond, Col. Gardiner, Gen. Burns, the Lawrences, Nicholsons, Edwardes, and General Havelock, and many others in. modern times living and dead, who are or- naments and pillars of the Church of God, and yet at the same time are distinguished for their service to their country in the army and navy ? Nor do we find in the New Testament any censure upon the centurions whose history is presented in the folTowing pages, for* their connection with the military profession. There is not a syllable like this recorded of the centurion of Capernaum, nor of Cornelius, nor of the centurion in command at the crucifixion, nor of Julius, who had charge of Paul on his perilous journey to Pwome. Nor did John the Baptist, nor our Loixl in preaching INTRODUCTIOlSr. XXI to soldiers, intimate that their profession was inconsistent with the ethics of Christianity. And besides this presumptive testi- mony against the objection, that a military man cannot be a good Christian, what is the army or the navy but a national police ? If it is right for a city to have its mayor, sheriff, con- stables and police, then it is right for a nation to have its army and navy. They are nothing but its police force to suppress insurrection, enforce law and preserve order. Laws wiihout penalties are no laws at aH. Then every man must be his own judge and take the laws into his own hand, or he must be sub- ject to a government that will protect him. And for this pur- pose the government must have its police force. And if a Christian man may be a magistrate, a sheriff, or a constable or member of the city police, then he may be a sailor or a soldier, a commander in the fleet or army. There is nothing wrong in the one case more than the* other. There is no more, sin in being a commodore or general than there is in being a justice of the peace or the head of the government. The Rev. W. E. Boardman has briefly and very pointedly presented this idea in some foot-notes to bis "Higlier Christian Life." We would also refer those who desire to study the arguments on the justifiablcness of war, as ngainst Dr. Wayland and others of liis school, who con- demn all wars as useless, immoral and wicked, to the introductory chapter of Copt. 11. "W. Halleck's " Elements of Military Art and Soionce," and to the authors therein named. - This work is a valuable one, combining the results of fine scholarship and of patient and extensive study. The introductory chapter, though short for the subject, is so exhaustive as to leave scarcely any thing else to be said. We think his positions are ably and triumphantly sustained: but wo need hardly add, we earnestly plead against war. « In the Xew Testament we read : "And the soldiers hkewise demanded of him, saying, And what shall we do ? And he said unto them, Do violence to no man. neither accuse any falsely, and be content with your wages. ' — Luke iii. 14. We do not know ^^'ilether these XXll II^TRODUOTIOj^. soldiers were Jews or Romans, but the probabilitj is, thej Avere proselytes in the service of Herod Antipas, or of Philip, and in either case they were in the Roman service. The Greek term used here does not signify soldiers merely, but soldiers (strateumenoi) actually in arms, or under marching orders for battle. And as we learn from Josephus, that Herod was at this time engaged in war with Aretas, a king of Arabia, it is highly probable that Michaelis is right in saying that the military who came to John were a part of Herod's army, then marching from Galilee, and passing through the region where John was preaching. If this be correct, it is worthy of special notice, that John does not assume to decide between Herod and the Arabian king, nor say anything as to the lawfulness or justice of the war, but simply, and in his usual boldness and directness of style, tells the soldiers how to behave. In those days, armies were not as well provided for as they are now. Tliey Avere not under tlie same discipline that oar sol- diers are as. to private property. The custom was to make the country occupied by troops support them. And, consequently, the soldiers were strongly tempted to violence. And if they could not obtain such provisions and spoils as they wished from the inhabitants in any other way, they brought charges against them, falsely accusing them of disloyalty, rebellion, conspiracy, or some crime, by which tliey could justify themselves for taking by violence Avhat they wanted. Hence the propriety of John's Knox-Latimer style of preaching to them. "Do vio- lence to no man, neither accuse any falsely ; and be content with your wages." As if he had said. Take nothing by unlaw- ful means. Do not manufacture charges against the people. Accuse no one falsely. Be faithful, obedient, enduring. Find no fau* with your service. Murmur not at your pay. Ob- serve, then, John does not condemn their profession. He does not say, it was sinful for them to be soldiers, and that they must leave military service before they could please Gbd. But be does tell them that they must not do any wrong thing under pretext that their calling required or excused it. Men in the INTRODUCTION. XXlll army and the navy, as in all other professions, and everywhere, should be Christians. The state of the question, then, is this ; Most wars we think are wicked, unlawful and unjustifiable, either in tliQ sight of God or man ; but we do not believe that every war is sinful/ Nor do we believe that the Gospel forbids the followers of Christ to engage in the military profession. "We uot only do not find any direct prohibition of war in the Bible, but on the contrary we have in the Old Testament '" the wars of the Lord." We find God commanding war and conquest. And if all wars are unjustifiable and sinful, how is it that our Lord and his apos- tles have not expressly })rohibited the military profession in the most unequivocal and positive terms ? And, moreover, if every war is sinful, how is it we find so many pious men in the army? men as eminent for piety as for courage in the march, patience in the camp, and etficiency in the storm of battle ? And the centurions whose history we are here studying are as commend- able for their faith and extraordinary devotion as for their loy- alty in the service of the pagan emperor of Rome. Our pur- pose here, however, is not to encourage war. We believe that most of the wars of our day are unnecessary and unjustifiable. And we believe the tendency of the Gospel is to do away with them from the earth; and that if all men were fully under its influence there would be no wars. Our purpose in the follow- ing pages, is mainly to show that it is not impossible for sol- diers to be pious — that their condition is not in itself so sinful, that they are to be excused from a religious life, because they are soldiers or marines. It is no doubt true that it is much harder for some men to be religious than others, just as it costs some men more to be decent than it would cost others to become saints. ISome men are so constitutionally wicked — have so professionally and thoroughly devoted themselves to sin, that they are not only totally depraved, but their faculties are severally and alone, each by itself in need of an entire conversion for itself. But what then ? Must we despair ? By no means. Jesus Chkist liLlV INTEODUCTION. IS THE Saviour of sixxers, even of the chief of sinners. And the more desperate the case, the more glory to the medi- cal man that can heal it. Our great aim, then, in this volume, is to give an expository history of the Four Centurions, offi- cers of the Roman army in Judea in apostolic times, who were to a greater or less degree brought under the power of the Gos- ])el, or at least made acquainted with our Lord's history and doctrines ; and to illustrate the fact, that eminent piety in a soldier is consistent with the loftiest courage — that in truth, the Church of God may and does exist in earthly armies. It is certainly very desirable that military men, officers ana privates in the army, should be constantly reminded that there have been found in all ages in their profession, men whose piety, to say the least, would bear a comparison with that of any other profession. It is a necessary encouragement to them to know that men of their OAvn class, men in every respect by birth and education and daily circumstances like themselves, have been truly pious. This should keep, them from despairing. The cases we have tried to illustrate show, also, that God employs a great variety of means or instruments by which to bring men to a k'nowledge of saving truth ; and that in some instances a high standard of piety has been displayed under great disad- vantages. Men in the army and navy are accustomed to deci- sion, promptness in action, and to meet with opposition and to endure discipline, to display a lofty courage and a devotion to their country and th,e cause they defend. It is perfectly con- sistent, therefore, that when it pleases God to reveal himself to them, they should show the same manful decision and courage in behalf of the Gospel. THE CENTURI01!T OF CAPERNAUM. And wlien Jesus was entered into Capernaum, there came unto bim a centurion, besecliing liini, and saying, Lord, my servant lieth at home sick of the palsy, grievously tormented. And Jesus saith unto him, I will come and heal him. The centurion answered and said, Lord, I am not worthy that thou shouldest come under my roof: but speak the word only, alid my servant shall be healed. For I am s. man under authority, having soldiers under me; and I say to this man, Go, and he gooth ; and to another. Come, and he cometh ; and to ray servant. Do this, and he doeth it. When Jesus heard it, he marvelled, and said to them that followed, Verily I say unto you, I have not found so great faith, no, not in Israel. And I say unto you, That many shall come from the east and west, and shall sit down with Abraham, and Isaac, and Jacob, in the kingdom of heaven : but the children of the kingdom shall be cast out into outer darkness : there shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth. And Jesus said unto the centurion. Go thy way ; and as thou hast believed, so be it done uuto thee. And his servant was healed in the self-same hour, — Matthew viii. 5-13. See also Luke vii. 1-10. 1. — The Coming to Jesus. It seems to us tliat tliis naiTative is one of tlie most beautiful gems that so profusely adorn tlie Gospel history. It is the picture of a reli- 26 THE CEXTUPwIOX OF CAPEKNAUJM. gious soul in a lovely and cliild-like form, re- vealing an extraordinary faith under great dis- advantages. And lohen Jesus loas entered into Caper Qiaiim. The time of this miracle was shortly after our Lord came down from the mount where he had delivered his inimitable sermon, .and not long after the miracle at the wedding in Cana of Galilee. The scene of this miracle was the city of Ca- pernaum, celebrated in the history of our Lord, though scarcely known in Old Testament times. Though born in Bethlehem of parents who be- longed to Nazareth, our Lord^ made his own home chiefly at Capernaum. While in subjec- tion to his parents — from early childhood till he was thirty years of age — he seems to have dwelt in Nazareth ; but about the time that he commenced his public ministrations, or soon after his baj)tism, he *' came and dAvelt in Ca- pernaum." This city was therefore the centre of his operations. To it we iind him generally returninQc from his vai'ious itinerant missions. It was situate on the northwestern side of tlie THE CENTURIO]^- OF CAPERNAUM. 27 lake of Gennesaretli, called also the sea of Ga- lilee. It was a Jewish city, at this time held by a Koman garrison in Herod's pay. There is still some doubt whether tiie precise spot on which it stood has been identified. Hitter and others suppose the Tell Hum of our day to mark its site; but our countryman, Dr. Ilohin- son, and others, think ICalin Minyeli, about three miles farther north, is its true site. IIo^v- ever this may be, it is incontrovertible that our Lord's prediction concerning this city has been long since fulfilled. " Thou, Capernaum, which ait exalted unto heaven, shalt be brought down to hell ; for if the mighty works which, have been done in thee,, had been done in So- dom, it would have remained until this day. But I say unto you, that it shall be more toler- able for the land of Sodom in the day of judg- ment than for thee." Matth. xi. 23, 24. Although this city was our Lord's home dur- ing the years of his public ministry, and not- withstanding He gave its inhabitants many evidences of his power to work miracles and to save, still they were remarkable for their infi- 28 THE CEI^TURIOI^ OF CAPERNAUM. delity, impenitence and general wickedness, and lience his denunciation of their sins for rejecting Him and continuing in their rebel- lion. Their abuse of great privileges aug- mented their guilt until their condemnation was greater than that of Sodom. There came unto Him a centurion. Our word centurion is 'from the Latin centum^ a hundred, and means literally a Koman officer commanding a hundred men, corresj)onding nearly to our captain. (See Adams' Rom. Antiq., p. 370.) The title centurion was, how- ever, used with so much latitude, that it some- times siscnified one who led a subdivision of a Roman legion, without fixing precisely its num- ber. In the following places we find mention made of persons called centurions. Beside the passages referred to as texts above, Mattli, xxvii. 54 ; Acts xi., xx., xxii., xiii., xxiv., xxvii., xxviii. The first convei-t to Christianity after the crucifixion from among the Gentiles whose name is known to us '^^"as Cornelius, a centu- rion of the Italian band at Cesarea, of whom we have more to say in another chapter. At THE CENTUEIOX OF CAPERNAUM. 29 least four centurions are favoraljly sjDoken of in the New Testament. Some tliink the centurion of Matthew now before us the same who is called a nobleman of Capernaum in John iv., who came to Jesus, and begged mercy for his son. But there is no rea- son to suppose them the same. There are some striking j^oints of resemblance, it is true, in the two narratives ; but our Lord was never strait- ened for motives nor for means of showing his mercy. In both cases, the person asking help occupied a high position in society, and the person at the point of deatli was young, and the cure was wrought at a distance ; and in both cases, the faith of the person making the a2;)plication was remarkable ; and our Lord was glorified by both miracles. Still there are points dissimilar — so dissimilar that the cases must be distinct. The one was a Jewish no- bleman, looking for the Messiah ; the other was a Eoman officer, who had but little, if any, information concernins: the m'eat Hebrew that was so long and so ardently looked for as the Messiah. The Jewish nobleman makes appli 80 THE CENTUEIOlSr OF CAPEKJ^AU^I. cation io Jesus in behalf of a son, ^vlio Avas nigli unto deatli witli a fever ; tlie lloman oill- cer applies for aid for a servant (a slave), wlio was afflicted Avitli paralysis. One miracle was wrought by our Lord when he was at Cana, the other when he was in the streets of Caper- naum. But that which most distinguishes between the miracles was the faith of the appli- cants. The Jewish nobleman's faith was feeble. He besouirht our Lord that he would come and heal his son, for he was at the point of death. JoJni iv. 2T. He seems not to have thought that Jesus could heal his son, unless he visited him, and, like a medical man, on the spot should examine the patient, and prescribe ac- cording to the symptoms. Hence, we hear him saying, ''Sir, come down ere my child die." But the centurion said, " Lord, I am not wor- thy that thou shouldest come under my roof: but speak the word only, and my servant shall be healed." There is some difference of opinion among inferpreters as to the identit}' of the cases re- corded by Mattliew and Lulw Cavillers have THE CENTURION OF CAPERNAUM. 31 attempted to make out a contradiction between tliem. In regard to wliicli, let it be remem- bered, we Lave no j^ositjvo proof that l)otli evan^-elists refer to tlie same case. It is not impossible but that there were two instances very much alike. Their circumstances may have been mainly coincident, and yet not iden- tical. But on the su23position that we have two accounts of the same case, we find no diffi- culty in harmonizing them. They agree as to the characters, time and place, and substantially in the details. The only difference is that Iai1^:6 is more particular in his chronology, and is more*full, and gives us more details of outivard events than are preserved in Mattlieio. Ijiike says the centurion sent the elders of the Jews, who besought Jesus to grant his request, say- ing that he was worthy, for he lovetli our na- tion and hath built us a synagogue. But Mat- tlieio^ in saying that the centurion came unto Jesus, does not contradict Lalce's statement. He does not say that he had not sent his friends the elders of the Jews, nor does Luke say that he did not follow after them himself 32 THE CENTUEIOK OF CAPERNAUM. Tlie probable state of tlie case was, that at first lie sent, and being anxious, lie followed after- ward himself. And each of tlie evano-elists records that j)aii: of the transaction which made the deepest impression on his mind, or seemed to him the most important. And as Luke was most familiar with Gentiles, and seems to have written his memoirs of our Lord especially for them, he records that this E-onian officer was so kind to the Jews that their elders were his friends and interceded in his behalf, while Jfattheiv^ writing for his own countiy- men, the Jews, was the most impressed with the fact that the centurion, a Roman officer, came himself to our Lord, who was a Jew. And besides, if this explanation is not sufficient, then we may adopt the legal maxim, and say — that which we do through or by another, is done by us. We may appear in court by our attorney or lawyer. We may be said to build a house, though we employ a carpenter to do it. A farmer may be said to plough and reap, although he employs laborers to do it for him. Such language is common, and obtains in all THE CENTUEION OF CAPERNAUM. 33 tongues. There is then no handle here for the enemies of the Gospel with which to work up a discrepancy between the evangelists. There is no contradiction between them ; but on the contrary, by a candid and intelligent compari- son of the two accounts, we obtain a more full history than we could get from either sepa- rately, and at the same time have an incidental or undesigned proof of their truthfulness as writers. Such minor variations are common in all written and oral narrations. The elders sent to convey the centurion's message interceded for him, saying : " That he was worthy for whom he should do this, for he loveth our nation, and hath built us a syna- gogue." — Liike vii. 3-5. A synagogue was a chapel or place of wor- ship, where- the Jews held their meetings for reading and expounding the holy Scriptures, but perhaps not common among them till after the captivity in Babylon. And as the centu- rion commanded the Roman garrison at Caper- naum, he probably thought it would have a good effect upon the restless, turbulent Jews, 34 THE CE:N^TURIOj!T of CAPERNAUM. wlio were so "bitter in tlieir j)rejiidices against tlie Eomans, if lie showed them kindness. Sol- diers and sailors are proverbially liberal willi tlieir means, and prompt to support public institutions. It was, however, a remarkable instance of good feeling, even if there was a measure of political expediency in it, for a Ro- man centurion out of his small salary to build a Hebrew synagogue. We must not think, however, that we can purchase the grace of God by our charities. The centurion did not think of claimino; the divine interposition because he had built a synagogue for the Jews. He did not speak of this at all. Nor is there any merit in religious duties to atone for our sins, or to give us a claim upon divine mercy on account of them. We should no doubt build houses of worship, and supj)ort the institutions of the Gospel, and we should read the Word of God, and hear his Gospel preached ; but the means of grace are not to be substituted for Christ. The divine IDromise is that we shall find a blessing, if we seek, but not hecause we seek. The use of the THE CEI^TUEION OF CAPERIS^AUM. 35 means of grace is not tlie procuring cause of salvation, but tlie channel or way in whicli we are to find it. They bring Christ before us. It was when Lydia was in the synagogue on the Sabbath day that she heard Paul ]3reach, and the Lord opened her heart to understand what she heard. It was when the Ethiopian was reading Isaiah, as he was returning from the worshipping of the Lord at Jerusalem, that the Sj)irit sent Philij) to him to preach unto him Jesus. They were all found in the dili- gent, prayerful use of the means. " Beseeching him and saying. Lord, my ser- vant lietli at home, sick of the palsy, grievously tormented." Ify servant — literally " my boy " — a common and familiar term as gargon in French, or as we use the word hoy for a favor- ite servant Avithout res^ard to his ao^e. Luke calls him a slave, and so interpreters generally understand the word doulo,s. Calvin suggests that he was a slave of rare fidelity and endow- ments, and hence the master's greater solicitude to save his life. Lietli cti home — literally is prostrate in the 36 THE CENTURION OF CAPEENAUM. liouse — side of the j^c^.-s*?/. It would seem tliat paralysis is not wholly a modern disease, as neuralgia or dyspej)sia are said to be. Critical- ly speaking, tliere may be some difference be- tween j)alsy and paralysis, tliougli tlie first term seems to be only a contraction of the lat- ter ; but in the New Testament they seem to be spoken of as quite the same thing, and as com- ing under our term apoplexy. The original here signifies a relaxation of the nerves of one side. The palsy j)revailed in our Lord's day, and does still in the East. But there is scarce- ly any description in the New Testament of the diseases that prevailed in Judea in his day. Grievously tormented — tenibly, fearfully dis- tressed — is in great agony and at the point of death, as in Lulce. Now it is entirely a mis- take, as some critics say, that in such a case of palsy there was no consciousness, no agony, no suffering. It may .be true that torment or agony does not always accompany the palsy. But there is a form of this disease that is at- tended by violent cramps and strong j)ains, and is exceedingly dangerous. Trench says the dis- THE CENTUKIO]^- OF CAPERNAUM. 37 ease in tliis case was paralysis, witli contraction of the limbs and joints, and was, tliei'efore, a case of extreme suffering as well as of great danger. The Greek term for grievousltj tor- oncnted is from the name of a Lydian stone, upon which metals were proved, and hence it came to be used for applying an engine of tor- ture in the examinatior of criminals, and meta- phorically to afflict, torment. And hence here it is applied to a jparalytic w^ho is suffering vio- lent pains. II THE CEJ^TURION" OF CAPERT>rAUM C0:N^TII^UED 2. — The Peculiar Excellence of Ms Faith, And Jesus saitli unto hirn^ I xoill come and heal him — tliat is, I will grant your request. I will save your servant. I am ready even to go to your house. Our Lord's reply then w^as prompt and gracious, marked with a confidence and dignity that showed that he was conscious of inherent power to work such a miracle as would save this servant. And now in the cen- turion's reply and our Lord's commendation of him we have an instance of extraordinary ftiith — of strono; and discrimimitino; faith — and of a miracle wrought without personal contact or immediate presence. Happily for us, this case will enahle us to consider the nature of faith, which is an ess.ential thing both in society and in religion. For such is our constitution that THE CEISTTUEIOIT OF CAPEEXAUM. 39 we caiiuot live without fixitli. We must Lave faitli in ourselves and in one another, and in God and in his Word and works. It is by faith we know the history of the creation, and receive all our knowledge of past ages. We live by faith from day to day. We go to sleep at night confident of the coming mornino-, v/hether Ave live to see it or not. We have Mth in the ordinances of heaven, and trust in the regularity of the laws which God has im- posed upon nature. They are all his servants. We trust in our senses^ though they have often deceived us. We have faith in ouvfelloiv men, though they have often cruelly deceived us. A battle is fought and a kingdom is risked through faith in the intelligence of a spy. The merchant sends his vessel to the other side of the globe in charge of his captain, or ships a vast amount of goods to his correspondents, or buys thousands of dollars' worth of exchange, all on faith. The general must trust his officers and men, and they must have faith in him and in one another. And though some soldiers have turned traitors, and some clerks and consio-nees 40 THE CENTUKIOIT OF CAPERNAUIM. liave beeu heartless villains, still, so essential is the principle of faitli in society, that we must act on it. We cannot do without it. Without faith the affairs of society must stand still, and society itself is nothing but a moun- tain of sand. Faith, then, is not a mere ab- straction, nor the invention of cunning priests by which to put a yoke upon the people's necks to hold them down while they help themselves to their purses. Faith is not some- thing merely bound uj) in the Confession and Thirty-nine Articles. Nor is it a new faculty of the mind made to priestly order by the Council of Nice, or by the Synod of Dort, or by the Westminster Assembly, or by the Brit- ish Parliament. In general, faith is not a super- natural thing. It is a simple, familiar princi- ple of every-day life. Intellectually and in a relisrious sense it is the same thino-. It is be- lief, trust, confidence. But religiously, it is trust in God, belief in all God has said to us, because He says it, and confidence in his mercj throudi his well-beloved Son Jesus Christ. Such a faith is the gift of God. It is produced THE CENTUEIO^ OF CAPERl^AUM. 41 by liis Spirit. It is " a saving grace wherel)y we receive and rest upon Jesus Christ alone for salvation, as lie is offered to us in tlie Gos- pel." We may tlien see why it is that the Scfriptures speak of faith as being so important, and tell us that without faith we cannot please God, nor be saved. And it is certainly re- markable that the two most extraordinary instances of faith recorded in the New Testa- ment should have been found among the heathen, and not in the Hebrew Church — this centurion and the Syro-Phoenician woman in Mattliew XV. And of her case, our Lord did. not speak of her toil and travel, nor of her expense and perseverance, submission, patience, humility and maternal solicitude in coming to Ilim, but specifies her faith as most worthy of notice ; so here it is not the benevolence, nor charities, nor rank, nor soldierly demeanor, nor humility and perseverance of the centurion that our Lord commends as most worthy of admira- tion, l)ut his faith. "Verily I say unto you, I have not found so gi'eat faith, no, not in Israel." 42 THE CEXTUEIOI^ OF CAPEKIS-AUM. In the first jAace^ tlieu, is tliere any thing in the centurion's case that justifies our LorcFs commendation ? Even liemarvelled at it. That is, was filled with wonder, admiration, aston- ishment, speaking after our manner, that 'so discriminating and strong a faith in him should be professed by a Roman officer. And the Holy Spirit has no doubt preserved this record of our Lord's admiration, to teach us that this man's faith is to be imitated as well as won- dered at. It was wonderful that a man under such natural disadvantages as had encompassed this pagan and soldier in his education and ^youth, and profession in manhood, should re- cognize what the Jewish rulers failed to see, and should j)rofess a greater faith than any of their race — a race heroic by faith — had ever before displayed. First. It was to be marvelled at that such faith was found outside of the Hebrew Church. The term faith used in the text does not of itself necessarily imply saving views of Christ as a Kedeemer ; but from its connection, we think it proper so to consider it. Primarily it THE CEi, not in Israel — that is, not among the chosen people. Not one of the dis- ciples or apostles, even, had as yet made such a profession of faith in him. They had the prophets and Moses, whose writings clearly pointed out the work and character of the Messiah, yet they had not professed such frdth in him. Not in Israel is emphatic. Israel was the memorial name of Jacob for his havinsr prevailed with God so as to become a prince, and from liim all Jews ])refer to be called Israelites, just as the j^eople of Rome assumed to be called Romans in honor of Homuhis. The meaning then is : I have not found such an instance of faith amono; the Jews, who are 4-i TIEE CENTUEION OF CAPEET^AUM. clistingulslied for tlieir princes, who liave pre- vailed witli God on account of tlieir laitli. They have had men of heroic faith, but not such an instance as this. The distin2:uishino; excellence of the centu- rion's faith, then, did not consist in his having an exalted idea of God, and believing that he was the Creator and governor of all things. David had as 2:reat faith in the works of crea- tion and Providence as he had, and no doubt knew a OTeat deal more than he did. And Cleero and many of the heathen had some grand ideas of the Divine power. He could say : " Nihil est quod Deus eflicere non posset, et quidem sine labore ullo," etc. (JDe Kat. D.^ lib. 3.) Nor did the peculiar excellence of the centu- rion's faith lie in his belief in miracles. All Jews, and even all the heathen, believed in miracles. It was a part of the common faith of the whole world, and is so still, with excep- tions as rare as idiots. The peculiarit}^, the dls- tin2:uisliino: excellence, then, of this man's faith consisted in this — that he, being a Gentile and THE CEIiTTUKION OF CAPEENAUM. 45 a Koman officer, accustomed to see men liavinoc influence and autliority regarded with great ceremony, should believe that Jesus, who was outwardly a mere man — a Hebrew — in humble circumstances, and without any of the pomp or signs of power that he was accustomed to re- cognize, wielded the heavenly powers, and had as complete ' a control over them, and over all diseases and spirits as he had over his servants and soldiers. Second. It was worthy of sjDecial attention that such faith was found in a soldier. Our Lord was at this time surrounded by the Scribes, and probably in the house of a Pharisee, but it was in the Roman soldier that he found the greatest faith. As the profession of arms is not in it- self sinful — is not a sin "per se — so neither is the term soldier synonymous with cruelty or blood- thirstiness, nor with drinking, debauchery and lawlessness. If there are butchers among sol- diers like Nana Saldh^ there are also Haveloclcs who are as distinguished for refinement and kindness of feeling as for lofty courage. We regard war as a terrible thing, but it is some- 46 THE CEN^TUEIOIf OF CAPEE]S"AUM. times tlie less of two evils. "War is better than national clisorrace, or sucli loss of national honor and position as should destroy our self-respect and happiness. Gladly would we have our cannon turned into church bells, and our shot and balls into railroads, and our men of vrar into merchant shi23S, if it were exj)edient. But it is not, nor will it be, until men 'shall learn war no more. Such is the depravity of man- kind that one sword is necessary to keep an- other in its scabbard. It is not necessary here, however, to enter upon the question about the lawfulness of war in Christian states. The only point here insisted on is, that because a man is a soldier, he is not of necessity the greatest of sinners. A man is under no neces- sity to serve Satan, because he serves the gov- ernment as a soldier. The army is not a favor- able school for piety. The military profession presents occasions and temptations to idleness and manifold w]-ong-doing. It is an excited, spasmodic, irregular kind of life. The soldier and the sailor are often without Sabbaths and sanctuaries, and under peculiar temptations to THE CEA^TURIOIS" OF CAPERNAUM. 47 fo^'get God, yet it lias pleased God tliat liis grace should have many heroes even in armies and camj)s and naval ships. If the military profession was a sin ])er se^ then, instead of having chaplains to preach the Gospel and administer the sacraments of the Chnrcli in onr army and navy, they should urge the men to desertion. But vv^hen the soldiers crowded to hear John the Baptist preach, as well as the Scribes and Pharisees, did he tell them to desert, and join a Peace society? No; but he did tell them to do no violence and to be con- tent with their wages, and not to accuse any man falsely. Soldiers are found also listening to the vfords of truth as they fell from the lips of the Great Teacher himself. Bat he did not tell them to leave their profession because it was a sin. In the New Testament vv^e have four different centurions brought under the power of the Gospel. The one before us owed allegiance to a heathen emperor, yet he pos- sessed greater faith than any in Israel. And ^vhat shall we say of Abraham, Moses, Joshua and David — men of preeminent faith, and yet 48 THE CENTUEIOlSr OF CAPEEIS-AUM. heroes in battle ? And wliat shall we say of Captain Page, Captain Gordon, Colonel Gar- diner, General Burns and General Sh' Henry Havelock; and many others in our times ? III. CENTURIOIir OF CAPERlSrAUM CONTINUED. 3. — Evidences of the Centmnon^s Faith, 111 tlie next ])lace^ tlien, let us look at the proofs or evidences of the centurion^ s faith. And here observe, First. His tender care for liis servant. But could not a Koman officer be kind to liis servants and faitliful to liis sol- diers, without having any knowledge of the true religion? Do not the heathen practise many virtues ? We answer, certainly they do. There are some actions recorded of heathens that are worthy of imitation. But admitting that there are some few things lovely and excellent among Pagan nations, we do not by any means admit that their ethics are to be compared with those of Christianity, or that they are not in need of the Gospel. By no means. The picture drawn of them by the 3 49 50 THE CENTUEION OF CAPEENAUM. apostle in his epistles is still true. Nor do we allow tliat tlie admission of any good thing to heathendom is antagonistic to the Gospel. The morals of lieathendom, even if they were a hiin dred times better than they are, do not contra- dict nor supersede Christianity. The teachings of tradition, the light of nature, and of con- science and God's Spirit are the teachers of all men, and are quite sufficient to account for the glimpses or guesses at truth that we find among the heathen. Considering the ph3^sical and moral unity of all human races, it would be strange if there had not been found in heathendom an unconscious proj^hesying that proves the necessity of a Saviour, just as their sacrifices prove a conscious need for some atonement for sin. Indeed it would be strange if there were not some fragmentary truths in all nations and in all ages, resembling one an- other, and altogether bearing testimony to God's own original copy and to the complete edition of his o^vn revealed truth. Second. The comijleteness of this Bom an sol- dler''s character^ as seen in the care of his ser- . THE CENTUKIOlSr OF CAPEEISTAUM. 51 vant as well as in his public spirit, deserves special notice. His attention to the religions wants of the peo23le around him, nurtured his humane feelings for his own household. His charity did not all go abroad. He did not make his generosity toward the Jews an excuse for neglecting home duties. His public regard foi the Hebrews was not made a veil to cover up selfishness. And as a historic fact, it is to be observed, that true religion is always found developing what is lovely and of good report, noble, kind and reasonable. Tliis centurion's anxiety for the recovery of his slave is, how- ever, the more remarkable when we consider that he was a Koman, and the age in which he lived. His conduct is a remarkable contrast with that of the eloquent Cicero, who thought it necessary to excuse himself for having had some feelino' at the death of one of his house- o hold. Ordinarily in that age and among the Romans, slaves were denied the sympathy that belonged to other human beings. In whatever way we may account for the morality and tenderness of this Roman officei 52 THE CENTURION OF CAPERNAUM. • toward his servant, we iind them in connection with, colored by, and developed in an extraor- dinary faith. His benevolence and charity, if not called into being by his religious faith, were certainly ennobled and made more deli- cate by it. It is indeed true that morality is not piety, but there is no consistent or true piety without good morals. It is true, that high social affections, amiable instincts, commercial virtues — promptness in business, cajDacity for business, and integrity on 'Change, are not to be substituted for penitence and faith in Christ, yet they are in every way commendable. But the instinct of kindness toward a servant or dependent may in itself be no more in a reli- gious way than instinct tenderness toward a horse or dog. And does not this instinct ten- derness for animals exist among the heathen who have never heard of the name of Jesus ? May not a deist^ who does not believe in the Bible, bind a poultice to his wounded hound, or an atUeist^ who denies immortality, and says there is no God, weep over the groans of his dying steed ? May it not l)e, then, that a man THE CE]STUEION OF CAPEENAUIVI. 53 is sober, intelligent, and industrious — that lie has been a dutiful son, and is a faithful hus- band, an indulgent father, a kind neighbor, a good citizen, an upright and honest man, and that still he is not a Christian? If he is all this, let us thank God for it ; but let us remember that one thing he lacks yet, and that one thing is love to God — a supreme regard for his will — an habitual reference of all to his law as the standard of rig-ht and wi'ong- — an habitual trust in God as a sinner reconciled to Him throug-h Jesus Christ, l^ow is it not fairly a matter within your own expe- rience or observation, that a man may have amiable instincts and social and business vir- tues, and yet not have the fear of God before his eyes ? There is want of spirituality spread over all he is and does. There is no spirit of prayer, of love to God, nor panting after holi- ness, nor habitual striving to please God. Is it not true that a lady may be found weeping at the theatre over a tragedy, who has never wept over her guilt as a sinner, for rejecting Christ ; or in ecstasy at an opera, who has 54 THE CENTUEION OF CAPERNAUM. never rejoiced in tlie love of God slied -abroad in lier lieart by tlie Holy Gliost ? A taste for j)oetry and tlie fine arts does not always imply a love of holiness, Nor does a reformation of manners always imply regeneration, tliongb regeneration is seen only by a reformation of life. Every conversion to God yields tlie fruits of true obedience to his laws. Salvation by grace does not lead to licentiousness, nor does justification by faith excuse us from good works, but the rather impels us to them, so that those who believe in justification by faith, and in salvation by sovereign grace, are of all men the hardest and most persevering workers. They w^ork diligently because God works in them, and they believe God is helping them. It is not true, then, that Christianity diminishes in any measure a man's tenderness for his fellow men; nor does it make a man any the less trustworthy as a mechanic, merchant or soldier. On one occasion the general in command of the English army in India was told tiiat the insur- gents were about making an attack on one of his positions, and he ordered out a certain regi- THE CENTUKION OF CAPERNAUM. 55 ment to oppose tliem ; but Lis aid replied, tliat regiment could not go, for "tliey were all drunk." " Then," said tlie commander, '' call out Ilavelock's saints; they are never drunk^ and Havelock is always ready." Accordingly the bude sounded — the ranks of the " saints " closed sternly up, and with him at their head, who had so often led them in prayer, the troops charged on the enemy and scattered them in flight.* This true history is its own interpre- ter. For the soldiers wha were so sober and so much given to singing psalms, reading the Biljle, and j^rayer, that they were called Have- loch^ s saints^ because he had so taught them, were the very men of all others to meet the enemy. And never did they fail to perform their duty faithfully to their general, their country and their God. The history of war from the beginning till now, does not present a record of greater courage or of more lofty hero- ism in battle, than we find in Havelock's In- dian campaigns with his Highlanders and the 13th Infantry. * Ileadlcy's Life of Havelock, p. 48. 56 THE CEN^TUEION OF CAPEKCN^AUM. It is not then true, that tlie Gospel builds up the Church on the ruins of civilization. Christ-, ianity wages no war against the fine arts, nor does it preach any crusade against the elegant accomplishments or proprieties of society. Go- ing to church is not to make people vinegar- faced ; nor is true enlightened piety a lowering gloom, nor a moping melancholy. A man does not cease to be a gentleman by ])ecoming a Christian. On the contrary, he is only half, and the least half of a gentleman before, for until he is a Christian, even if he is all that a gentleman should be toward his fellow men, he has not done his duty to his God, and is therefore sadly Avanting in that completeness — that hio-h finish of character that constitutes the highest style of a gentleman — a tliorongldy Iwnest incm both toward his fellow men and God. And shall we not imitate this Roman officer in his tenderness toward his servant \ Among the great evils of our times are the in- subordination of domestics, the precocity of children, and the selfishness of masters and the heads of establishments. Flunkies affect to be THE CENTURIOI^ OF CAPERNAUM. 57 lords, and " the queens of society " are in tlie kitclien. So feelingly and so universally is the remark made, that " servants are the greatest plagues of life," that we are almost ready to wish our times were thrown back to the feudal ages, when, if there was a distinction in rank there was also some care for subordinates, and some household pride and aifection. But now household relations are transient, spasmodic, uncertain — a mere convenience or necessity for dollars and cents. The social and religious improvement of the one part, and the promot- ing of the welfare of the other part, are re- spectively t)verlooked. Nor is it easy to see where the remedy lies. We can, however, look back to former years, and sigh that in this par- ticular the past is better than the present. The evils of society, as it now exists among us, are very serious, both as it regards the well-being of its members in this world, and the spiritual necessities of both masters and servants, heads of establishments and the young under their care. It is perfectly obvious that we are tend- ing in our day to anarchy and lawlessness, and 3* 58 THE CENTUEION OF CAPERNAUM. to a system of pauperism, wliicli only tlie strongest governments of Europe are able to bear. And the root of this evil is the neglect of home education, the want of family govern- ment, instruction and religion. Third. Another evidence of this centurion's faith is seen in his remarkable humility. His address to our Lord, saying, I am not ^vortliy that thou shouldest come under m/y roof^ is the more remarkable when we consider the relative position of the parties. Jesus was a Jew — be- longed to a people despised by the Komans. There was no earthly pomp or greatness about him. But here we see an officer of*the Roman army commanding in a conquered province, whose master was the conqueror of the world — rich, influential and powerful — so struck with the dignity and moral excellence of Jesus, that, wholly regardless of the disparity of their rank, he openly professed himself unworthy to re- ceive a personal visit from him. Indeed, so remarkable was his humility, that if our Lord had not commended his Mth, we should have been at a loss which to admire the most. In- THE CEISTURIOaS- OF CAPERNAUM. 59 deed, tliey Avere inseparable, and are so still. Tlie root of his humility was his faith. The excellence of condescension is that it proceeds from true greatness. His humility is seen in his declaration of unworthiness, as well in sending the Jewish elders as in his declara- tion about our Lord's coming to his house. ^' Wherefore neither thought I myself worthy to come unto thee." " Lord, trouble not thy- self: for I am not worthy that thou shouldest enter under my roof." Lithe vii. 6, 7. How vastly different this from the style of the Pharisees. The Gentile soldier was a better Christian than the Hebrew elders. So great was his humility that he did not consider him- self good enough, nor of sufficient value to have the honor of our Lord's personal presence at his quarters. But it deserves to be remembered that such humility as this is found only in connection with true faith. Without reverence there is no i)iety. The Eoman soldier was not given to stereot^q^ed and vain phrases. . He was not quick to make vain professions. But in a few 60 THE CENTUEION OF CAPERNAUM. words declared wliat he. felt. "S^Deak tlio word only, and .my servant shall be healed." Short, exj^licit, and full of meaning, just such words as such a military man would be likely to use. He knew nothing about the lore of the schools. He had no catechetical defini- tion of faith on hand. He had never read a theological treatise, hence he made his profes- sion of faith in the language that his profession suo^srested. And as faith is the same thincc, whether found in a heathen, a Jew or a Christ- ian, whether found in the heart of a soldier, a sailor, a merchant, or of a philosopher, so there is no mistake as to his meaning. The forms and modes of expressing our faith may be greatly diversified ; but faith itself is the same thing. Hence he, referring to his own expe- rience and to his own of&cial power, said : "I say to one, Go, and he goeth ; and to another. Come, and he cometh ; and to my servant. Do this, and he doeth it ;" so says he, I believe you have the will and the power to heal my servant. " Speak the world only, and my servant shall be healed." This is a most lively, laconic pic- THE CE:XTURI0]S^ of CAPERNAUM. 61 ture of Roman autliority, brevity of command and promptitude of obedience. Now as faitli is trust in God, so it is alto- gether a different tiling from the liauglity and ignorant spirit of self conceit, whicli is some- times called independence or manliness. Now, if by being independent, a young man means tliat he will earn his own living by honest toil and owe no man anything — that he will rise in the world by his own exertions and not owe it to the patronage of others — that he will be honored by his own labors rather than hj those of his father and mother, then we bid him God speed. This may all be quite right. But if by independence, he means that he will be bound by no ties to other human beings — that he will owe no allegiance to any^will but his own, and live within and by himself — then we say, lie is quite at fault. He is trying to do what is wholly impracticable. He will never be able to ])[ij his God, his parents and his country what he owes them. Nor can he live alone. Without a friend the world is a desert. Without something: to love and con- 62 THE CEN^TUEIOIf OF CAPEEISTAUM. fide in, man is a miserable creature. This mor- bid, affected love of indej)endence tliat throws off the obligations of society — that frees a man from the moral 23rinciples taught him by his parents because they are old-fashioned, and affects to make a man his own lord and master, is revolutionary in politics, atlieistic in religion, and a monstrous deformity. And it j)roves jealousy and littleness on the part of him that indulges it, rather than true manliness of char- acter. Do not eiT, however, as to the centm^ion's IminiUfy. He was not blindly pinning his faith to anybody's sleeves, nor was he imj)aling his heart for daws to peck at. lie was not fawn- ing cyn the Emperor of Kome, wov fiatt-e ring the commanding general of the Eoman legions, nor teUlng lies, nor offering bribes to the Governor of Cesarea, nor electioneering for a nomination to high places and emoluments. His ^homage was voluntary, and proceeded from his own conviction. He came to Jesus of Nazareth to save his dvinir servant. And accordino^ to the divine promise, having humbled himself, he THE CENTUPwIO]^ OF CAPERjS^AUM. 6B was exalted. He did not think himself worthy that Jesus should enter his house, but our Lord entered his heart. His humility was be- fore honor. It was just the reverse with the Pharisee — he considered Jesus unworthy to be in his house, or that he was doing him a great honor to invite him to his house, and our Lord did not enter into his heart. Foiirtli, It is in evidence as a proof of the centurion's extraordinary faith, that he did not require any assistance from the senses. His confidence was implicit, perfect in the presence and power of a will, which was itself not visi- ble. Is it not remarkable that he did not de- sire Jesus to go with him — that he did not consider his hodily presence necessary for Vv^ork- ing the miracle ? He did not consider any per- sonal contact necessary. He looked for the desired result not by any ordinary treatment, much less by any trickery. His faith was in the 2:>ower of the Supreme Being, whose agent he believed Jesus to be, if he was not the very God of God himself, manifest in a human form. It is well known that even the heathen had 64 THE CENTURIOIT OF CAPERNAUM. some idea of tlie God of tlie Jews, and of angels and spirits, and had some notion of God's assuming liuman forms, and coming among men. Homer is full of this. The centurion in command at the crucifixion had some confused idea of Divinity on earth,* or that the Son of God could suffer as a man on the cross. I am satisfied that the ordinary method of ex23lain- ing the faith of this centurion and of Cornelius the centurion of Cesarea, by considering them proselytes to Judaism, is not correct. It is not affirmed in either case, nor fairly implied. In- deed the very reverse seems to be implied in the terms used to express their piety, and by the contrast with Israel, in the history now under consideration. It is, however, true, that though brought up in the creed of Paganism, still he had of late years, by his residence in a Jewish town, sufficient opportunities to become familiar with Hebrew opinions and somewhat acquainted with the fame of Jesus. Tlie mira_ cles and history of the former ages of the Jew- ish nation were no doubt substantially known to him and believed in l)y Inm. Nor would THE CE]STUEION OF CAPEEXAOI. 65 this imply at all tliat lie was a proselyte of the gate ; but only that he was no longer a gross idolater, and had respect for the Hebrew faith and people. It is not easy to define how much, and just what kind of faith the centurioii had before he came to Jesus ; but we are sure, from the result, that he did right in applying to Jesus, and that he had faith enough to save his servant, and we hope faith enough to save his soul. FiTtli. The centurion's case is also the more re- markable, on account of the national prejudices that existed toward the Jews in the minds of all other nations, and which were returned with compound interest by j:he Jews toward all other people. The prejudices of race and religion were exceedingly strong between the Romans and the Jews, and at this time, their political subjection made the Jews more bitter than usual. The proud Roman usually felt contempt for the conquered Jew. But this centurion betrays no such feeling ; nor does he •assume any patronizing air on account of his military command, nor for what he has done 66 THE CENTUEION OF CAPEENAUM. for tlie Jews, nor does lie resent tlie peculiar claims of the Hebrew religion. Taking the wliole history into review, we cannot but hope that this centuron was truly converted to God. He could not have been iscnorant of the main doctrines of the Hebrew religion. He must have known that they believed in one only living and true God, and that they claimed peculiar privileges as the people of God de- scended from Abraham; and as we find him here acknowledging himself unworthy of the personal regards of a Jew, and yet possessed of an unwaverino; faith that he could exercise as unquestioned power over diseases, as he himself could over his soldiers ;. and the more so, because this sense of unworthiness and tliis deep humility imply a sense of sin that could be produced only by the Holy Spirit. When, therefore, we put together his consciousness of sin — his feeling of unworthiness, and his high opinion of Jesus, and remember that his educa- tion as a Eoman officer had been completed by gaining considerable knowledge of the world, aud especially some knowledge of the Hebrews THE CENTUEIOlSr OF CAPEENAUM. 67 and of tlie religion of tlie God of Abraham, Isaac and Jacob — we conclude that tlie sick- ness of a favorite servant was overruled by a gracious sovereignty, so as to be made the occa- sion of his comino* into direct contact with the Son of God, and of bringing out this confession of faith in Him. Sixth, The form of his profession of faith proves its strength. "For I am," says he, "a man under authority, having soldiers under me : and I say to this man, Go, and he goeth ; and to another. Come, and he cometh ; and to my servant. Do this, and he doetli it." There- fore, says he, " speak the word only, and my servant shall be healed." This was emphatic- ally a military profession. It was logical, sim- ple, brief and straight out. His argument was a fortiori — from the weak to the stronger — from the less to the greater. He institutes a com- parison between his military authority over his soldiers and servants and the j)ower of Jesus over all things, or at least over spirits and diseases ; and he says, I believe that you have all the powers of the invisible world under 68 THE CENTUEIOIS" OF CAPErwNAUM. your command as fully as I have command over my soldiers. And even more than this seems implied. It is as if he had said, I, who am but a subordinate officer, issue my orders and they are promptly obeyed, although I am myself under the authority of my superiors, whom I implicitly obey ; then much more have you the power to make diseases go or come at your simple word. I am an humble officer, and have command over only a few soldiers and servants, but thou art in command of the armies of heaven, and all things are obedient to thee. His belief that Jesus could heal at a distance implies his idea that our Lord pos- sessed omniscience and omnipresence. IV. THE CEXTURIOX OF CAPERNAUM CONTINUED. 4. — This Roman officer still p^eacliing ilie Gosjpel, First. Here is an incidental illustration of the perfect liumanity of our Lord. "When Jesus heard it, he marvelled" — woiuhred^ or more literally, was astonished, spoken in refe- rence to his humanity. Our Lord's estate of humiliation was as real as his estate of exalta- tion. His body and soul were as truly human, as his Divinity was truly that of the Godhead. His human nature was perfect, and in it he was capable of grief, anger, wonder, or joy. Tlie only difficulty here is " the mystery of god- liness : God manifest in the flesh." The mean- ing of our Lord's marvelling, then, is not that he did not know the state of the centurion's mind before he sj)oke. He was as well ac- 70 THE CENTUEIOI^ OF CAPEENATj:^!. quaint eel witli tlie nature of his faitli, and tlie grounds upon wLicli it rested, before tlie cen- turion had professed and explained it as he was afterward. The term used here also embraces the idea of admiration — such as is felt for the greatness and beauty of a thing. Our Lord then designed to express his admiration for the centurion's faith as extraordinary in this — that though nurtured in heathenism, yet his faith was superior to any he had met Avith among the children of Abraham. And this admira- tion the evangelist has expressed in natural lano^uaofe. Second. "We should learn from this history not to indulge in general and indiscriminate reflections upon whole communities and profes- sions. AVe must not condemn men as classes. In the soldier's or sailor's life, in camps and fleets, there are many drawbacks to a Christian life ; but where sin reigns, grace has abounded, and even reigned more gloriously. The profes- sion of arms is not without its army of saints, confessors and martyrs, who have waged suc- cessful war with other than carnal weapons. THE CENTURION OF CAPEKNAUM. 71 And if some lawyers liave given occasion for calling their offices " dens of thieves," it does not follow that none of them are honest. If some merchants have sworn to false invoices, and sold goods inferior to their samj^les, it does not follow that they are all guilty of fraud. And if some officers of the army and navy do so far forget themselves as to swear as if they were with the army in Flanders, it does not j)rove that all soldiers must take the name of God in vain, nor that it is necessary to swear profanely in order to maintain authority over sailors and soldiers. Ilavelock did not swear at his men. But he did often pray and sing psalms with them, read the Bible to them, and teach them about Jesus Christ. A most strikino; instance of this is recorded by the Be v. Mr. Brock, in his Life of Havelock, in his first campaign. The English army had just taken Rangoon, in which there is ^'a fa- mous heathen temple devoted to the service of Boodh, which is known as the magnificent Shi- vey Dagoon Pagoda. It is deemed the glory of the city. Of a chamber of this building, 72 THE CENTUEION OF CAPEEKATBI Havelock obtained possession for liis own piu-- poses.- All around tlie chamber were smaller images of Boodli, in the usual ]3osition, sitting witli tlieir legs gathered up and crossed, and the hands resting on the lap in symbol and expression of repose. No great changes were necessary to prepare the place for Christian service. It needed no ceremonial exorcising to make it fit either for psalmody or prayer. Abominable idolatries had been witnessed there beyond all doubt, but no sacerdotal purifi- cations were requisite ere adoration of the true God could be offered and service well-pleasing to Him, throuo;h Jesus Christ. Havelock re- membered well that ' neither in this mountain nor yet at Jerusalem ' were men to worship the Father now. To the true worshippers any place might become a place for worship. Even the pagoda of Shivey Dagoon might be none other than the house of God and the gate of heaven. "Accordingly, it was announced that that would be the place of meeting. An oflicer relates that as he was wandering round about the pagoda on one occasion, he heard the THE CENTURION OF CAPERNAUM. ^3 sound, strange enougli as lie thought, of sing- ing. He listened, and found that it was cer- tainly psalm singing. He determined to fol- low the sound to its source, and started for the purpose. At length he reached the chamber, and what should meet his eye but Havelock, with his Bible and hymn-book before him, and more than a hundred men seated around him, giving earnest heed to his proclamation to them of the glad tidings of great joy. How had they got their light by which to read, for the place was in dark shade ? They had obtained lamps for the purpose, and putting them in order, had lit them and placed them one l)y one in an idol's lap. There they were, those dumb but significant lamp-bearers, in constant use; and there they were, we may be well assured, to suggest stirring thoughts to the lieutenant and his men." Here is a subject worthy of a painter. The city of Rangoon and its glory ; a young British officer in a heathen temple with his Bible and hymu-book before him, and more than a hun- di'ed men seated around him, listening to the 4 74 THE CENTUEIO:^^ OF CAPERNAUM. glad tidings of tlie Gospel, and tlie lamps tLat gave tliem liglit shining out of tlie laps and skulls of idols. Troops just led through the fury and smoke of battle, here assembled for prayer and singing psalms. This vras an ex- traordinary sight. But it did not discpialify either the men or their commanding officer for the hardships and perils of war. The voice of Havelock, so often heard in prayer to the throne of grace in time of need, and in thanks- giving after great deliverances, was strong and steady in battle. When complaint was made to the Governor-General of India against Have- lock, that he was " a pietist," " a ranting Me- thodist" or " a fanatic Baptist," and that he did nothing but J)ray with his men and teacli them to sing psalms, and that his highest aim was to Jjajytize them, Lord Bentick having examined into the subject, dismissed the complaint, say- ing, he wished Havelock " had l^aptized the whole army," for that, after a i-igid examina- tion of the official records, he found that Have- lock's saints were the most sober, obedient and best behaved men in the regiment — " in short, THE CEiS^TUEIOX OF CAPERl^AUM. '?5 tlic model soldiers of the army " — " and tliat wlierever hard ii2:htiiio: was to be done, Have- lock's saints were relied upon." Certainly, no commander ever had the confidence and obedi- ence of his men more fully than he had. He was remarkable for the accuracy of his drill and the rigidness of his discipline. 'No other troops on earth have shown more coolness and precision under the rattling hail of musketry, nor amid the murderinoi: crash of ai'tillerv, nor have any soldiers on earth surpassed Have- lock's in the bayonet charge. Nov have we any knowledge of braver men in action than Vicars and Hammond before Sel)astopol, and Law- rence and Ilavelock at Cawnpore and Luck- now, and yet these men were distinguished as men of prayer. Some professions are, indeed, more favorable to a religious life than others ; and yet it is in these unfavorable ones some of the brightest examples of the power of true godliness are found. There the reigning of grace over abounding sin has made it preeminent. The more temptations men have to resist, the more 76 THE CEiS'TUEIOJS^ OF CAPERI^AILU. evil propensities tliey have to subdue, tlie more difficulties tliey have to struggle with, the more is their success to be commended. The more terrible the conflict, the brigliter the victor's crown. Although the reputation of Nazareth was proverl)ially bad, yet out of it came the world's Redeemer. Shall we not, then, be cautious in judging of professions and classes, and not let our prejudices or passions .lead us to erroneous, hasty, uncharitable judg- ments ? There are many more good and truly pious people in the world than w^e generally suj)pose. And there are a great many people that we should love, if we only knew them better. All men are not reprobates because some are. Ju- das was one of the twelve, yet th<3 rest were true men. Peter loved his Lord, though he did once deny him, and is now no doubt a saint in heaven, Avhether he ever w^as a Poj^e in Home or not — perhaps all the better saint, be- cause he was not. Arnold's treachery does not prove that Washington did not love and serve his country till his death. What, then, if THE CEj^TURIOK OF CAPERNAUM. 77 some cliurcli members are rude, unpolislied, or even starclied liypocrites, it does not follow that Christianity is not the true religion. We cannot have a community fit to live in until the practice of wholesale slandering, and cruel, rash, unfounded judgments are corrected. Pub- lic sentiment must be elevated and purified from the vulture-seeking of a neighbor's wrong- doings, and by speaking only the truth, and the truth only when necessary. Third. Let us learn then to be more chari- table. God is no res]3ecter of persons, but who- soever feareth Him and worketh righteousness is accepted of Him. Salvation is indeed of the Jews, but not to be confined to them. It was with them as a reservoir until the fulness of time for causino; it to flow forth to all the world. We rejoice that ours is not the only true Church — that we have no patent for ours as the only way to heaven. " Many," says our Lord, " shall come from the east and the west, and shall sit down with Aljraham, and Isaac, and Jacob in the kinsfdom of heaven." The centurion beimr a Koman — a Gentile — Y3 THE CEIS^TURION OF CAPERKAUM. sucli as the Jews considered altogetner ex eluded from the privileges of Messiah's king- dom, our Lord took the occasion to declare the sovereign grace of God toward the Gentiles, and to teach the Jews that their j)rejudice^s were wrong, for that all parts, even the remo- test quarters of the earth, should receive the Gospel, and all nations flow into the kingdom of God. And that the cliildren of tlie hingdom^ • that is, the Jews who claimed to have a pecu- liar and exclusive right to the privileges and blessings of Messiah's kingdom, because they were Abraham's descendants, sJiall he cast out into outer darlvness : tliere sliall he tveejying and gnashing of teeth. " Outer darkness and weep- ing and gnashing of teetli " are a fearful image of the wretchedness and woe of those vrho iixW to enter the kino^dom of God. It is founded upon the banquet-chamber of the preced- ing verses, illuminated and filled with joyous guests ; but outside, in the cold and cheerless dark, where is nothing l)ut weeping and Avail- ing and gnashing in rage and spite, are those that considered themselves the favorites of THE CENTUEION OF CAPEEKAUM. Y9 God, and sure of heaven, because of tlieir de- scent from the patriarchs. Oh, how dreadful to be an outcast from Grod's kino^dom ! How awful will be the disapj)ointments of the day of judgment! Fourth. The proofs of the reality of this miracle are easily apprehended. JSTo collusion was possible. The household, the Jewish rulers and the public are all acquainted with the facts, and all admit the main j)<^iii^^7 namely : the centurion's servant is very ill — in the very agony of death — and the centurion coming to Jesus besought him to speak the Avord only and his servant shall be healed. And Jesus neither goes to his house nor touches nor sees the dying servant, but speaks the word and he is healed. Multitudes hear and know and admit that all this was true. And the common belief of all the people at that time in Capernaum is embodied in the simple and plain narrative of our evangelists. Christ- ianity then is true. Jesus Christ is the Son of God, and the Almighty Saviour of all who be- believe in Him. 80 THE ce:n:tueion of cAPEPv:N^AU3r. Fifth. Learn that disadvantages are not in superable. Great difficnlties in onr way may be overcome. Not only is to bear, to conquer onr fate ; but to a heroic soul in the path of duty, " Danger's self is lure alone." And the greater the difficulties overcome in coming to Jesus, the greater our faith. The early disad- vantages of the centurion resulted in giving superiority to his faith. His want of education in the knowledge of the true religion in his youth, and the unfavorable influences of his profession, made his faith all the more dis- tinctive. The proudest triumphs of art, science, government and arms have been achieved by men who have reached success not from aristo- cratic loins, nor l^y royal road, but by overcom- ino- almost insupera1)le difficulties. Tlie men who iTile us from their urns, and who had, while living, the greatest influence u2:)on man- kind, wci^e self-made men — men who have pur- sued knowledge, truth and godliness under difficulties — who have risen superior to gi*eat disadvantages — who have carved their way to fame and fortune with their own hands. THE CENTURION OF CAPERNAUM. 81 We must strive to enter in, if ^ve would be saved. Sixth. In our Lord's commendation of the centurion, we see that it is according to the degree of a man's faith, that he is to be esti- mated. As if he had said he is the strono^est man who has the most faith, for faith takes hohl of omnipotence. The words, Verily,' I say inito yon, are intended to mark the com- mendation of the centurion's faith as something special His faith was stronger than that of the nobleman who had come to Jesus for his dying child. We read of others who apy)lied, saying : " If thou canst do anything, have com- passion on us and help us." And the sisters of Bethany said, "Lord, if thou hadst been here, my brother had not died." And the fjxther of the demoniac in agony and in uncer- tainty, cried out: "I believe, help thou my unl^elief." But none of them said, Speah the word only, and the work of mercy is done. Martha and Mary seem, like the nobleman, to have thought our Lord's bodily presence neces- sary to heal. But the centurion lias no if nor 82 THE CENTUEION OF CAPEFwNAUM. idea of sj)ace in liis faith, and hence oiir Lord's commendation was nnqualiiied. His faith was unparalleled in Christ's power to lieal at a dis- tance, and without any personal contact. Seventh, As the centurion's mind naturally run in the channel of his profession, and as in casting about for expressions or terms in which to 'declare his faith in Jesus, we find him build- ing his faith upon the elements which his pro- fession readily furnished, and declaring his faith by the forms of sj^eech which his own mode of life suggested; so we should learn from his case, that God accepts our faith and our profession of our trust in him even when it is drawn out in the form of our callino: or mode of life. The rules of military science among the Komans gave form to his profession of faith.''^ He felt and believed in the presence and power of the Roman emperor, though his person was not in Capernaum. As an officer in the army, he was under a present will, thoui^h no bodilv form was present; and so * " Scd banc excoptionem concoquit sapientia fidelis ex ruditate militari pulcbre cluccns." — Bekgel. THE CENTUEION OF CAPEENAmr. ^ 83 lie helieved that Jesus could heal without per- sonal contact. Nor is this the only instance. The heavens are always telling the gloiy of God. The daisy and the dewdrop declare the presence of God as well as the mightiest planet in tlie highest heavens. 'Nov is there any trade, calling or profession that is according to the laws of God, that may not in its way educate our soul for God and immortality, wdiile it enables us to gain an honest living in the body. Perha23S we may illustrate this from the case of the shepherds and of the wise men of the East. Shepherds, like sailors, are close observers of the weather, winds and skies. They are proverbially superstitious, as people also usually are w^ho dwell much alone among the mountains. To them the sighing of the storm, the moaning of the night winds, the clouds wreathino; themselves around the head- lands, or rolling up in columns, and marching off in unequalled grandeur over the mountains — all seem to be instinct with more than mor- tal life. It was natural, therefore, if such an expression may be used, where all was super- 84 THE CENTURION OF CAPErwNAUjM. natural., tliat tlie voice of angels slioukl come to the shepherds on the winds from the melo- dies of the skies: "A multitude of the heaven- ly hosts praising God, and saying, glory to God in the highest, and on earth peace, good will toward m-en." They heard the glad tidings of a Saviour born, while watching their flocks by night on the Bethlehem plains— while en- gaged in their humble, honest occupation. And so of the Magi. In the clear starlit skies of the East, where one seems almost to see throuirh the cerulean vaults to the eternal throne, the wise men were engaged in their profession, which was the study of the heavenly hosts, and v/hile engaged in this study, a star is sent to guide them to the infant Iledeemer. And so should it be with all our pursuits, whereby we make a living, and are brought into contact with. the laws of God. Tlie mnn that spades up' the ground and sows the seed, and he who converts the solid rock into lime, and he who builds the brick with mortar into a solid wall ; and the sunburnt sickle-man, and the hard-handed miner, who grinds the gold THE CENTURION OF CAPERNAUM. 85 from the quartz, or attracts it from tlie sandy mass, no less tlian the electrician and astrono- mer, are all working witli and by the laws of the Creator. The ladder by which IN'ewton climbed from his apple-tree to the outposts of the universe was made by the laws of God. The Almighty vrent before him and laid his hand upon all sj^ace and matter, or the philoso- pher could never have climbed to the limits of our system. And shall we not adore the wis- dom, the goodness, and the sovereign grace of God, that makes a man's business for him — so that it is a school for him, both for this life as well as for the life to come ? Our callins: or pursuit in life should be according to the will of God, and then our diligence in business, as well as our fervency in spirit, will ])e a means of grace — in both we shall serve the Lord. It is intended to educate us for heaven as well as gain for us a living upon earth. It is possible for us to make the best of both worlds. The Koman soldier read throuofh the reflations of the art of war a jr^ersonal will^ and he knew that his authority extended in like manner to 86 THE CEjS^TUEION of CAPER]S^AU3r. those that were placed under him ; and in the unity and harmony, variety and yet concentra- tion, movement, strategy, logistics and tactics of an army, he saw clearly the presence of an all-controlling, designing, supreme mind. And all this process he transferred to Jesus, and made all the invisible world as subordinate to him, as the inferiors of an army are to the commanding officer. Wonderful is the condescension of our Maker ! We are indeed j)oor, feeble creatures. We are almost invisible particles in the vast universe, yet each one of us is so bound up with other atoms in the divine volume of Di- vine beaievolence and omni23otence, that not one of us is forgotten before God. The hairs of our head are numbered by him. The spar- ro^v, though not remarkable for plumage or voice, cannot fall to the ground without the permission of our Heavenly Father, and then •falls accordimr to his laws. But we are of much more value tlian many sparrows. There is no pL'ice beyond the jurisdiction of our blessed Creator. There is no escaping, or THE CEXTUEIOX OF CAPEEXAUM. 87 being exiled out of liis reach, nor beyond liis eye. His laws are all around iis. Xor is there in all the amplitude of the universe, a flower or a star, a spear of grass, an insect, an atom or a planet, that does not teach us the pres- ence of God's laws, and illustrate the beauty of holiness, and the suldime lessons of the Cross. It is not then incredible that a beetle should have heeii commissioned to teach the way to a crown, and a little moss in an African desert should have j)reached the presence and goodness of God to a wearied and exhausted traveller when he lay down to die ; but thus having his faith strengthened he put his trust in Him, who had made so tiny and beautiful a thing to grow in so vast and dreary a solitude, and revived and lived. It is an evidence of Divine goodness, that we may And " sermons in stones," theology in a crawling beetle, or in a desert moss, and " good in everything." Eighth. As the success of faith rests upon the power of Him in whom it is exercised, so it is instantaneous. Christ is able and willing to save to the uttermost all that come to God 8S THE CEXTURIOX OF CAPERNAUM. througli Him. And wliosocver comes to Him, He will in no wise cast out. All our liope is in God. All our safety is in Him. The pro- mise is, if we believe. Tlie result of true faitli is immutably certain. Christ is sufficient. So Jesus said unto the centurion, " Go thy A\ay ; and, as thou hast believed, so be it done unto thee." Our Lord condescended to comply with his terms. The centurion did not ask him to o'o to his house. He did not enter it. He asked Jesus simply to speak the word. Jesus did speak the word, and his servant was healed ^' in the selfsame hour." The recovery Avas im- mediate. So the poor leper was cured instan- taneously, who had come saying, " Lord, if thou wilt, thou canst make me clean.*' ''As thou hast believed, so be it done." Happily for us the simplicity of faith requires not the mastery of any system of doctrines nor the acquisition of any learned science. We are not to wait to know w^hat faith is, but receive Christ as He is offered to lis, and we have a Saviour. It is not by merely consenting to receive as true a system of doctrines, l)ut by receiving the great THE CEXTUEIOX OF CAPEEXAOI. 89 Kedeemer liimself tliat we are saved. Tlie sud- denness of the cm-e of the centurion's servant, the time when it happened, and the working of the miracle without any prescription or any kind of medical treatment had a convincing* effect upon the j)eople. And perhaps in no other case is the saving power, or the simpli- city of faith, more happily illustrated than in this one. Faith is confidence, trust. It takes hold upon Ilim who is invisible and yet able to save to the uttermost all that come to Him. " If thou canst believe, all things are possible to him that believeth." "He that believeth shall be saved, and he that believeth not shall be damned." " He that believeth on the Son hath everlasting life, and he that believeth not shall not see life." " All things whatsoever ye ask in prayer, l3elieving, ye shall receive." Marie xvi. IG ; Johi iii. 36; JlattJi. xxi. 22; Horn. X. But what are all these promises, if we no not feel our need of salvation ? Is it true that you feel yourself to be a poor, miserable sinner ? Then Jesus, in whom the centurion believed, 90 THE CENTURION OF CAPERNAUM. lias come to seek and save you. lie offers him- self to you as an Almiglity Saviour. You are novf called to repent and believe, and tlirow yourself into tlie outstretclied arms of mercy. No matter liow humble your employment may be — no matter Low liigli and honorable it may be, you have only to accept of Jesus Christ as He is offered in the Gospel, and you will find peace and salvation. Have you received Him ? Will you trust in Him ? THE CENTUKION COMMAISTDING AT THE CEUCI- EIXION. Now when the centurion, and they that were with him, watching Jesus, saw the earthquake, and those thing-^ that were done, they feared greatly, saying, Truly this was the Son of God. — Matth. xxvii, 54. And when the centurion, which stood over against him, saw that he so cried out, and gave up the ghost, he said, Truly this man was the Son of God.— J/«r/j xv. 39. Now when the centurion saw what was done, he glorified God, say- ing, certainly this was a righteous man. — Luke xxiii. 47. . These verses manifestly describe tlie effect of tlie scenes of the crucifixion on the mind of Koman officer in command, and having- charg-e of the execution of the sentence of death passed upon our Lord. Jlie centurion ivldcli stood over against Jiim, in fall sio'ht of liim, or standincr in front of him. This was the natural and necessary j)osition of the officer presiding at such an execution. And 92 THE CEXTUEION AT THE CRUCIFIXIOIs\ . from it Ave see that the centurion had the cir- cnmstances of the crucifixion under his own personal observation. The whole scene was before him ; and when he saw lio^v Jesus ex- pired after he had cried out, he exclaimed: " Truly this man was the Son of God." As if . he had said, This is a most extraordinary case. This very man, against whom so much has been said, and who has been so cruelly treated, and so shamefully put to death as an impostor, must have been what he said he was — tlie Son of God. This testimony, therefore, was the honest conviction of his own mind from wdiat he him- self had seen and heard. Nor was he alone. N'ow ivlieii the centurion^ and tliey that icere with him^ watching Jesus, saw the earthquake^ and those things that were done, they feared greatly, saying, Tridnj this teas the Son of God, Probably only four soldiers were emj)loyed in nailing Jesus to the cross ; but a consider- al)le nund;er, perhaps his whole command, acted under the centurion as the guard, and watched him while he was hanofinir on the tree. THE CEXTUniOX AT THE CKTJCIFIXIO^S-. 93 And tlius it was that no ])art of the Gos2:)el his- tory is destitute of eye witnesses. The centu- rion is considered by some as having made his declaration heccmse Christ spoke with a loud voice and expired, and that he simply exj)ressed his astonishment that Christ should have had so much strength after such suffering and ex- haustion. It was true that our Lord did not die of mere exhaustion, or from faintness and want of strength. For he gave up his life. He died voluntarily. Others, however, think the centurion meant to applaud our Lord for his constancy in calling upon the name of God to the last moment. But it seems to us we are to take his confes- sion as the utterance of a conviction produced in his mind by all that he saAV and heard, by the miracles and the Avords of Christ applied to his conscience by the Spirit of God. More literally, having thus cried out^ not having reference merely to the last exj)iring agony, but to the previous cry of " Eloi, Eloi, lama sabachthani." The sense seems to be this : when the centurion saw what was done, and 9 J: THE CET^TUEION AT THE CRUCIJ'IXIOIS'. heard wliat our Lord said, and felt the thi'oes of the earthquake, and heard wliat had hap- pened in the temple and among the dead in the neiirhborino: tombs, and then turnino; to Jesus saw that lie had given up the ghost, and while looking on his dead body as it hung there on the cross, where only the bodies of slaves and of the vilest wretches were wont to be found, he exclaimed : " Truly this man was the Son of God." There is lio contradiction between the state- ments of the three evangelists, neither as to vvliat was said, nor what was omitted, nor as to whom what was said is attributed. Matthew says, " wlien the centurion and tliey that Avere with him, watching Jesus, saw the earthqua]art no more religion than beasts ; they had as THE CEXTUPvIOjS^ OF CESAREA. 133 great care of innoceiicy as ciit-tliroats, for wliicli cause tlie virtues of Cornelius deserve tlie greater commendation, in tliat leading a sol- dier's life, whicli was at tliat time most corrupt, lie served God liolily, and lived amongst men witliout doing any hurt or injury." His piety is, moreover, tlie more remarkable because tlie lives of tlie leading professors of tlie Hebrew religion at that time were anything else than commendable. Instead of alluring the heathen among them to the worship of the true God by their sincerity, humility and charity, the Scribes and Pharisees were censorious, proud, cold, for- mal and hypocritical. But he feared Godivith all Ids liouse^ that is, family. This means that he governed and instructed them. True piety is always accompanied by a sincere desire for the salvation of others, especially of those with whom Ave are closely connected, or for whose Avelfare we feel especially responsible. How- ever it may have been with other Koman oiS- cers, this one, in fearing God himself, was suc- cessful in malvino: his sentiments and conduct prevail over his household. Nor was his influ- 134 THE CENTUEIOJS^ OF CESAEEA. eiice confined to Lis own house — for lie gave niucJi alms to tlie ])eople. Alms liere are used by a figure of speech for all that a charitable and bountiful man, with the love of God in his heart, would do for his fellow-men. " Blessed is he that considereth the poor : the Lord will deliver him in the time of trouble." — Psalm xli. 1. And grayed to God always — that is, con- tinually. He observed the regular seasons of prayer — did not neglect the morning and even- ing sacrifices. "Kejoice," says Paul, "in hope; patient in tribulation; continuing instant in prayer." And our Lord has taught us that men ought always to pray and not to faint. Luke xviii., and also 1 Tliess. vi. Daniel j)rayed three times every day. The early Christians were careful to pray at the third, sixth and ninth hours ; that is, at nine, twelve and three. It is also to be remembered that Cornelius, as a soldier and an officer on duty, had much to do, and many hindrances to over- come ; but while he was faithful, punctual and prompt in tlie duties of his office, he could also THE CENTURION OF CESAEEA. 135 find time for prayer. His heart was always in a praying mood. If we incline our ear nnto wisdom, and apply our heart to understanding ; if we cry after knowledge, and lift up our voice for understanding ; if we seek it as silver and searcli for wisdom as for liidden treasures ; tlien we shall know the peace of the Lord, and lind the knowledge of God. Prov. ii. 2-5. Blessed are they that keep his testimonies, and that seek him with the whole heart. Ps. cxix. 2. It is a happy remark of Clirysostoin^ the golden mouthy that the Ethioj^ian eunuch, treas- urer of Queen Candace, and the Centurion Cor- nelius, are not mentioned because of their offi- cial rank and station, but because their official duties and rank did not hinder them from serv- ing God. If there is not as much j^iety, there- fore, in the army and navy as we should expect from the education, profession and j)osition of the officers and men, it is not for the want of examples in both ancient and modern times. It may indeed be true, that the precariousness of life amid the dangers of war, instead of awakening the mind to a proper preparation 136 THE CENTUEIOT^ OF CESAEEA. for eternity, is turned into an argmnent for ne- glecting religion, if not made a plea for dissipa- tion. It is a well known fact that in some of our cities nearness of tlie graveyard raises a suspicion of low morals — tliat 2:>lagues and epi- demics, instead of reforming a city, liave been noted for prevailing violence and licentiousness. AYe know liistorically tkat tliis lias been true of Jerusalem, Bagdad, Cairo, London, and of some cities on our own continent. A most remarkable instance of tliis is seen in the his- tory of Florence in the fourteenth century, when the plague almost de23opulated the city and surrounding country; and yet the morals of the survivors grew worse and worse as the plague raged the more and more deadly. The tales of Boccaccio illustrate that familiarity with sickness and death, exposure to shame and peril, does not convert men. 'Nor are the judg- ments of God miracles of themselves sufficient to bring men to salvation. They always har- den rather than soften, unless accompanied by the grace of God. It is at least painfully true that the hazards of military life do not always THE CE^^TUEIO]^ OF CESAEEA. 137 make men mindful of tlieir duty to God. Still, as a class, tliey are not excluded from tlie offer of the Gospel. Nor is it right that prejudices against any class of men or profession should be a hindrance in their way to salvation. • It is certainly not an impossibility to belong to the military profession and at the same time he truly pious. It may require much courage to d\yell in camps and resist temptations to evil doing ; yet it is hardly worse than to be a law- yer or a merchant. Opportunities for sinning and temptations to A\Tong-doing are in all occu- pations and in every one's path. But a long list of military and naval heroes could be given who were as remarkable for their piety as for their success in war. It is never proper to allow our prejudices to be excited against men as classes or professions that are not in them- selves sinful. VII. THE CEKTUEIO]^ OF CESAEEA CONTINUED. Having considered this Koman officer as a subject of divine grace — liis antecedents and circumstances, we proceed : 2. — Tlie Means or Agents em/ployed to hring about and develop Ms Conversion to Christ- ianitij. In liis case we are not told when lie was "effectually called," or regenerated; but we may see clearly tliat his regeneration was be- fore his conversion. In fact, he was pious be- fore he knew what conversion meant. He was devout and feared God, and gave alms and prayed always and constrained his household to do likewise, before he knew anything of the Gospel as a system of divine grace. Not, in- deed, l)efore his heart was under divine iniiu- 138 THE CENTURION OF CESAEEA. 139 ence, but before lie knew anything of tlie proofs that Jesus was the Messiah, and that salvation was only through him. A child eats bread and is nourished by it long before he knows how to analyze the bread and call it by its chemical names. And we breathe the air, and live upon it, and may never be able to describe it philosojDhically. So in Cornelius we iind the evidences of divine grace before he has learned how or whence he received it. How far God sends his Holy Spirit to ojDen the hearts of the heathen, who are without the Gospel or his written Word, we cannot say. It is not for us, however, to limit the Holy One. And though divine influence is to be ex23ected chiefly in connection with the Word read and preached, 3^et the Holy Ghost is not dependent on the Scriptures. The holy Scriptures have not created the Holy Spirit. On the contrary, the Scriptures were written by men moved thereto by the Holy Sj^irit. AYe dare not afiirm — we do not believe that God cannot convert and save men without his written Word. Still, it is true that it is chiefly by his Word read 140 THE CEjS^TUEIO]^ OF CESAEEA. and preaclied tliat men are converted and saved. In Cornelins, we can see liow liis mind might be led tlirougli tlie whole process of conviction for sin, and to faith and repentance without his ever having learned to distinguish theologically between regeneration and conversion — convic- tion natural and saving, repentance legal and repentance evangelical. A man may plough and plant and reap, who knows nothing of the scientific nomenclature of as^ricultural chemist- ry. We must not suppose, however, that Cor- nelius was a pious man at or from his natural birth; nor that he was made pious by the mere culture of military discipline. However much his education may have done for him — still his military code did not produce his piety. The efficient cause of his piety was supernatu- ral before he ever heard of Peter or the Holy Ghost, and it was produced by means. And in his case, the means were the light of Nature, the teachings of conscience and of tradition, and the direct influence of the spirit of God by and with and through these instruments upon his THE CEXTUrvIO:S' OF CESAEEA. 141 heart. We do not, tlierefore, look for, nor do we iind in tlie wonderful narrative before ns any metaphysical or formal account of this man's regeneration. All Ave have is a very brief statement of the effects of his re2:enera- tion, namely, , his conversion to Christ. That is, of his embracing Christianity as preached by the Apostle. 'Novi, as the power of mag- netism is one thing, and the actual turning of the needle to the pole is another; and as the law, power, nature, or whatever it is that is in the sun-fl-ower that causes its attraction toward the sun, is quite a different thing from, but essential to the flower's turning its face toward and folio wins; the sun : so reo-eneration and conversion are inseparable, but distinct. Cor- nelius was a pious man, but not converted to Christianity before he heard Peter preach. God had touched his heart, and noAV the effect is seen. The :mea]S's of his conveesioist, then, were extraordinary and ordinary — supernatural and common. Human and divine ao-ency wrouixht effectually and in j)erfect harmony, and without 142 TIIE CEIS^TUEIOI^ OF CESAREA. any violence to tlie freedom of tLe liuman will. And tlie agencies employed in tliis case were precisely tlie same tliat are employed now in every essential, tliougli the details and minor agents are different. He saw in a vision. Verse 3. EicliLorn, Ro- senmuller and others say in a dream. And Heinrich will have it nothing hut a com- mon dream, which, however, Storr has a])ly refuted. The language does not suggest a dream. It was not the time for sleej) or dreams. It was at the hour of j)rayer, the ninth hour, when it was full daylight, that the angelic vis- ion appeared. Cornelius was not only awake, but engaged in the most solemn prayer of the day. Commentators have enumerated seven ways in which God formerly revealed himself to men, namely : by dreams ; by apparitions while they were awake ; by visions while they slept ; by a voice from heaven ; by the Urim ; by inspira- tion or auricular revelation, and by ecstasy or rapture, by which a man was snatched up into heaven, ^vhich Lightfoot says was " of all other THE CEjN^TURION OF CESARExV. 143 modes the most excellent." See Rev, i. 10 ; 2 Cor. xii. 2. Evidently — manifestly, not dimly or doubt- fully — lie was conscious of eveiytliing and per- fectly sure of what lie saw. It was not liliely that a Roman officer, at such an hour, or under such circumstances, could have been d^eceived or imposed upon. An angel of God from heaven — one of those that attend around his throne as his ministers, waiting to do his will. The same angel, j)ro- bably, who appeared to Manoah, Moses, Daniel, and Zachariah. This messenger from the world of superhuman spirits appeared clothed as a man ; generally at first mistaken for a man of God, that is, one of the prophets. So Manoah thought at first the angel that appeared to him was a man of God. The popular idea that an- gels always appeared with wings is erroneous. The cherubim and seraphim had wings, and pro- bably it is from them this idea that angelic visitors to earth are always represented as hav- iniy wino-s has obtained. But the an^^els thafc appeared to Abraham to tell him a])out Sodom 144 THE CENTUEION OF CESAKEA. and Goniorrali had no winsrs. Tliere is some- tiling unartistic and absurd in tlie pictures of Old Testament ans^els that we sometimes see — • walkinir on the earth and with men and like men, except that their wings are son^ehow folded up on their backs or over their shoulders. The true representation of angelic visitors to man is to clothe theni in the ordinary dress of the religious teachers of the people to whom they were sent. The vision was to him as an oracle from God — not in the night season, but in open day- light — and accompanied with such seals or assurances, or marks of certainty imprinted upon his mind, as left him in no doubt of its truthfulness. It was not an illusion, but a reality. It was a vision from God. The fear that seized him when the vision appeared, was that of a brave and sensible man. Perceivins: that it Avas God that had sent the vision, and that he had now to deal with Him, he very properly asked: What is if, Lord? Lord here is no more than our Sir. And the an- gel answered: "Thy prayers and thine alms THE CENTUKION OF CESAKEA. 145 liave corae up for a memorial before God." Verse 4. Co7ne U2? is an allusion to tlie offering up of incense, whose fragrance and smoke ascended toward lieaven, and were then considered as acceptable to God. If'or a memorial— that is, are remembered before God. The force of this assurance lies in the fact, that as he was a Gentile, had not been circumcised, and did not conform to the rites of the Mosaic law, he was still in doubts whether his prayers were* heard, or his alms accepted as evidences of his faith and piety. The angel's words were, therefore, peculiarly fit words for Cornelius. And they, moreover, contain a great truth as to the divine method of dealing with mankind: that God prefers the offering of the heart to external forms, however imposing or ceremonious, however pompous and costly. God requireth not so much sacrifice, nor whole burnt offerings, but obedience. jLnd now send men to Joppa — a seaport to^vn distant about thirty-five miles, the nearest port to Jerusalem on the Mediterranean. This is 7 146 THE CENTUEION OF CESAEEA. doubtless one of tlie oldest towns in tlie world. Its origin is lost in the twilig^lit of time. Its antiquity is lost in a mass of classic fahles. Pliny asserts tliat it existed before tlie Deluge. Many Greek and Jewish traditions may be found tliat ascribe its foundation to Noah, and say that he built the ark here. We know at least that it was a city at the conquest of Joshua. To this port Hiram, King of Tyre, sent the lumber from the mountains of Leba- non for the building of Solomon's temple, and from hence it was caiTied up by animals to the holy city. This city is mentioned in the his- tory of the Asmonean princes ; but is referred to in the ISTew Testament only in connection with Peter's visit. Here he raised Tabitha from the dead, and was lodging when the cen- turion sent for him. We have found Jonah, the old Hebrew missionary to Nineveh, taking ship at this port to flee from the Lord. In the Crusades, and in Napoleon's Syrian wars, Joppa was a place of importance. It is still a town of about 5,000 inhabitants, one-fourth of whom are reckoned to be Christians. THE CEiSTTURIOX OF CESAKEA. 147 And call 'for one Simon, ivliose surname is Peter: lie lodgetli loitli one Simon, a tanner. Our word tanner comes from tayvit, cognate with Frencli teindre, to stain. Tlie Greek word used liere is hurseus, wliicli means a sMniier — tliat is, of animals ; and liere used in the sense of a skin-softener, a leather-maker, a tan- ner. This occupation was not highly esteemed by the ancients. Simon was probably one of the early converts to Christianity. In ancient times tanners used have their houses and work- shops, as is common with us, out of the city, or apart from the main crowded thoroughfares, on account of the fetid odor arising; from the dead animals and raw hides, and near rivers for the convenience of water. At Joppa may mean no more than that he was near to it,' or in the suburbs. The Hebrew Mislina required all such emplo}anents to be carried on at some distance from the towns. In Europe and the East it is common to give a specific address to every letter, and to describe in all legal documents a man's rank, occupation or profession. A. B. is a gentle- 148 THE CENTURIOISr OF CESAEEA. man. C. D. is a barrister at law. E. F. is a medical man. G. H. is a weaver, a farmer, a machinist, or a currier or tanner. And so in passports from one government to another. Simon a tanner is designated. He resides there and is known. Peter was only there on a visit, and his profession was not known, at least not among the people. If Cornelius had sent for Peter tlie Foj^e^ he would not have found him even to this day, or even for Peter tlie Apostle^ he would not have found him. His messengers, however, did find Simon a tanner, and Simon Peter upon his housetop engaged in prayer. Observe all these characters are re- markable for j)rayer and for visions. Cornelius prays, and has a vision to send for Peter. Pe- ter is praying when the messengers arrive, and falling into a trance, has a vision by which he is convinced that he ou2:ht to c^o with them. Peter's host was a poor man ; he probably had no prophet's chamber ; no upper room for his accommodation. It was common, however, in that country, for the people to retire to their housetops for meditation, rest or prayer. This THE CENTUEION OF CESAEEA. 149 »• custom is often alluded to in tlie Bible. Tlie tops of the houses in the East are flat. A tra- velle]' may now go almost all over the city of Cairo, Damascus, or Jerusalem, on the roofs of houses, without ever descending to the streets. He fell into a trance. Verse 10. Greek is, there fell on him an ecstasy, which seems to mean a preternatural state of mind, which was intended to prej^are him for the vision. In this kind of a trance the mind seems to retire from the body, and to be wholly absorbed with^ spi- ritual or internal objects ; a rapture of soul giv- inof the face a look of astonishment, and render- ing the subject for the time insensible to exter- nal objects, or to anything else than the subject then occuj)ying the soul. The books mention many extraordinary cases, which it is impossi- ble fully to understand or explain with our present knowledge of the connection that sub- sists between the mind and the external world, the soul and the body. The whole subject of the connection of the mind and the body is yet to be studied. I should not wonder if we are on the eve of great discoveries in religious psychology. 150 THE CENTURIOI^ OF CESAEEA. Please read liere verses 9 2?o 33, inclusive. Observe tlieir address and skill in oj^ening tlieir errand to Peter. And tlieij said^ Cornelius tlie centurion^ a just man^and one that fear etli God^ and of good report among all tlie nations of the Jews^ was loarned from God hy an holy angel to semi for thee into his hoiise^ and to hear words of tliee. Tliis is one of tlie most liappily con- ceived and snccessfully applied addresses in tlie world. They admit at once that their mas- ter is a Eoman officer, but to remove the preju- dices Avhich might be in Peter's mind as a Jew against him, they sa}^, although lie is a centu- rion, he is a just man — though an officer in the Eonian army that lias conquered and still holds your country in subjection, he is a man of inte- grity and courtesy, and he fears God and wor- ships the one living and true God of the Jews ; lie is not a cruel, savage idolater ; and Le has an excellent reputation among your own coun- tiymen ; and God has sent liis holy angel to tell him to send for thee ; and to send for thee to come into liis house, to hear words of thee. The point made was very strong. God had THE CENTUEIO]^ OF CESAEEA. 151 shown so much resrard for Cornelius as to send an holy angel from heaven to tell him to send for Peter, and to tell Peter that he must go to the Roman officer's, quarters, and there preach to him al>out Jesus. The message was from heaven. Peter was cei-tainly called of God to go to Cesarea^ And remembering Peter's vision on the housetop, we are not surprised 'that in spite of his prejudices, he was convinced and went. Tlien called lie tliem in,, and lodged them. And on tlte morrow Peter went away with ilicm^ and certain hrethren from Jopjya acconh panied them. As a matter of respect to Peter, Cornelius had sent two of his household, and a devout soldier as a guard. The roads were not free from robbers. In the East a person seldom travels alone. They are from habit, if not from necessity, a gregarious people. They live in vil- lages. Their transactions and journeys are always made in companies. It will frequently happen, if you ask a man why he came to the place where you find him, he will point to an 152 THE CENTUEIO:sr OF CESAPwEA. otlier man who seems to be tlie greater busi- ness man, and say, I came because lie did. In tlie East, if a man go to a court of justice, lie is followed by as many of his acquaintances as possible, who canvass all the i3robabilities of his case, and have a salvo for every exigency, and a salaxtm for every one they dare to hope they can influence in his behalf. They are warm-tempered and social in their habits, and then it is always necessary to have witnesses to all and everything that is said and done. This custom explains the importance attached in the Bible to the company a man keeps, and the solemn warnings given against evil companions. Nor are these Avarnings any the less importarit now and among us. One sinner destroy eth nmch good. The companion of fools shall be destroyed. Certain hretliTen went with Peter. How many we do not know. Perhaps six. It was respectful to Cornelius for Peter to have some friends with him. His companions were no doubt also, at least in part, acquainted with his trance and vision. And as l^e was ejoing THE CENTURIOIS^ OF CESAEEA. 153 on a new and difficult mission, they went witli him to comfort liim, and be witnesses of wliat sliould befall liim, or of what lie should do. And surely it was a gracious Providence that moved tliem to go with him. It was desirablo they should be witnesses of his reception by Cornelius, and of his preaching, and of the grace of God shown to the centurion ; and be able to testify of these things when Peter should be called to an account by his country- men for having gone among the Gentiles. And now, before we enter upon the consideration of Peter's sermon, let us gather up some reflections from the history. And First. As Peter stands before us, we have an admirable example of piety, zeal and faitliful- ness. He is engaged in his proper mission at Joppa — earnestly praying when he fixlls into a trance, receives a vision from heaven, and is prepared to understand the messengers of Cor- nelius, who were then just arrived in Jopj)a. And when he readied Cesarea, and Cornelius tells him all that he had done, and all that had been told to him, and says to him : " And thou 154 THE cekturio:n^ of cesaeea. hast well done that thou art come. Now, there- fore, are we all here present before God, to hear all things that are commanded thee • of God ; then Peter oj)ened his mouth and said — preach- ing peace by Jesus Christ," etc. Peter was far from being sinless, but he was a man of prayer and of earnest simplicity. Like David, he j)rayed and called uj)on God evening and morn- ing ; and as more is given to him that hath, that is, to him that uses aright what he has, so we find the enlightening, converting process carried on in Peter's mind imtil he has over- come his narrow prejudices against the Gen- tiles, and with a clear conscience opens to them the kingdom of Christ. That which at first he could not at all a2:)prehend — ^^vliich was dark and unaccountable — is made plain. And just so it was with the Roman officer. He is dili- gent in the use of the best means and of all the light he ]]as, and then more is given to liim. In j)roportion as vre are willing to know tlie truth, and seek for it witli an honest heart as for liidden treasure, in the same proportion we shall find it and be sanctified hy it. It is l)y THE CENTURION OF CESAEEi^. 155 the trutli we are to be made free from the bondage of error and the tyranny of Satan. If any man, says our Lord, will do the will ol God he shall know of the doctrine, whether it be of God or not.. Second. We have here a beautiful union of personal and relative duties. This Roman offi- cer " feared God with all his house." So did Abraham, and for it he received special divine commendation, and so did Joshua and Lydia. There is nothing more imj)ortant to the well- being of cities and states than family religion. The purity and intelligence of our families lie at the very foundation of our social and civil prosjDerity. The elements of our strength are in our families. One of the greatest causes of social degradation and political insubordination is the want of family religion and instruction. Public schools, Sunday schools, and the press and the pulpit are powerless without the co- ojDeration of parents. The fountains that flow over tlie land, coverim^ it in all its leno^li and breadth, rise in our households and receive their qualities of good or evil chiefly where 156 TIEE CENTUEIOIN" OF CESAEEA. tliey first break forth. Parents are teacliers by tlieir example ; but tliis is not enougli. Tliey must do as well as teacli. Tliey must govern, restrain and instruct. Every parent is called upon by all tlie love lie Las £or liis cliild and for bis country, and as be values liis soul, to say like Josbua, " as for me and my bouse, we will serre tlie Lord." " They who rock the cradle rule the world." Third, ^\e have bere tbe union of piety and morality. Cornelius gave alms to all tbe people, and be prayed to God always. Piety and morality are botb blessed realities, but tbey must not be- confounded. A pious man must be a moral man, but a man may be re- spectable in bis morals wlio is not pious. A man may reform himself from bad habits be- cause he finds they are injurious to his reputa- tion and his health. And this is Avell, and in so far he is to be commended ; but before lie can claim to be pious, he must fear God and pray to Ilim, and put his trust for salvation in the Lord Jesus Christ as lie is offered in the THE CENTURIOiSr OF CESAEEA. 157 Gospel. Piety is a living reality — a beauty that is " a joy forever." It is more than the forms of a ritual. It is a dynamic power that permeates the whole man from the heart out- ward. But as fatal errors are common on this subject, let us look at it for a few moments. Some seem to think they must be Christians, and talk of their communion with God, who are cruel, hard-hearted, close-handed and unjust. But this cannot be so. They are deceived. God never joined such things together. " Who- so," saith an apostle, " hath this world's goods, and seeth his brother have need, and sluitteth up his bowels of compassion from him, how dwelleth the love of God in him ?" Others are amiable and well to do in the world, and have a fair reputation with their fellow-men, but they live without God. Their Maker is not in all their thoughts. They have no love for Je- sus Christ. They are dead in trespasses and in 8ins. Indulging their sensual passions, tliey vainly hope, by a few gifts of charity, to cover a multitude of sins. • But what saitli the Bible on this verv matter ? ^'Pare religion and un- 158 THE CENTUEIOI^ OF CESAEEA. defiled before God and the Fatlier is fhis, to visit tlie fatherless and widows in their afflic- tion, and to keep themselves nnspotted from the world." James. Fourth. Here also we have a union of reality with eminence in the true religion. " He gave much alms to the peoj)le, and prayed to God always.'''' IS'ow, there cannot l)e eminence in grace without reality; but there may be a reality where there is not eminence. But as Christians, it is our duty to grow in grace and in the knowledge of our Lord Jesus Christ, addino: the excellences of relio'ion to its essen- tials. We should have life, and have it more abundantly. Our hearts should be enlarged. We should seek to be filled Avith all the full- ness of God. It were, however, wholly to misconstrue this portion of the Word of God, and to contradict the teaching of all tlie apostles, if we were to conclude that Cornelius was accepted of God on account of his morality and alms. We can be justified only by faith---not 1)y works. We are saved by grace — not l)y our own merits. THE CEIS^TUEION OF CESAREA. 159 It is, therefore, a j)alpal)le abuse of tliis liis- tory to make it a plea for trusting in our own righteousness — for trusting in our own morality and culture — as if tlie liavinsc of sucli thino-s justified a man for rejecting Christ. This did not the centurion. He feared Grod, worshipped him, prayed to God always, and gave alms to the people; and just as soon as he heard of Jesus Christ, he believed in him and was baj)- tized, professing his full conversion to him. He was ready to receive salvation by the Gospel, notwithstanding his good works. He was an honest, earnest man — humble and teachable as a child. And in all these particulars he differs widely from the self-righteous of our day. They are full of cavils and technicalities — self confident and wiser than their teachers. They boast of their decency and refinement, their love of the fine arts and of j^oetry, and are good enough to be saved without Christ. Now tlie Eoman centurion was as good a man l)y nature, and by practice, and by self culture, to say the least, as any of these self-righteous Pharisees, and probably much better, and yet IGO THE CENTUEIOIT OF CESAEEA. lie did not think it enougli to be moral and respectable. He did not rest satisfied with such things. He continues to pray to God for more light and grace, and God hears him, and as soon as he is told what to do, he obeys. He sends to Joppa, and when Peter arrives, says, how we are all here before God to hear v/ords from thee as to what we must do to be saved — all things that God shall command thee to say unto us. And when Peter explains to him who Jesus is, and that it is the Divine method of salvation that all men, Jew and Gentile, must believe in the Son of God and confess him with the mouth unto salvation, then Cor- nelius and his household were obedient — be- lieved and were baptized. The moral and decent and res23ectable men, therefore, instead of being justified by the centurion's case for not believing in Christ and professing faith in him is condemned — most strongly condemned by him. N'or is there ever any controversy between good morals and the Gospel. The alms and prayers of the centurion ^vere a memorial in THE CEXTUEIOjST OF CESAEEA. 161 Ills behalf before God. And it is true tliat all due houor is given to him for liis piety and good works, heathen though he was or had been — for he was not yet circumcised, nor up to tliis time does he seem to have known any- thing about believing in Jesus as the Messiah. But surely God is not straitened for means by which to reach the human heart. He called Abram out of Ur of the Chaldees. And Job in the land of Uz was a pious man. Melchize- dek was a pious king amid heathen neighbors. And here vre find Cornelius, a Koman officer — a devout man and one tliat feared God. And so in all lands and cities some are prepared to receive the Gospel as soon as it is preached. But it is not said that Cornelius was ac- cepted of God for his mere morality, ^or does it appear that he himself ever thought of de- pending upon it. From the history the very reverse would appear as true. His heai't was evidently touched. He did not trust to his alms, nor to his forms of prayer ; but was de- vout — sincere and fervent in his worship of God according to the best light he had. Is it 162 THE CENTUEION OF CESAEEA. not an abuse, tlien, for any man to argue that as Cornelius was a good man before be heard of the Gospel, that he may be a good man who hears it and rejects it ? This Cornelius did not do. He was a devout man according to all that he knew, and was ready to receive the Gospel as soon as he heard it. The case, then, is a very different one from that of a man who depends upon his mere external morality in a Christian land as a substitute for Christianity. Cornelius was found in the way of obedience to all known duty. Not content with his prayers and alms, he is seeking to know and to do more, and as soon and as far as he is instructed, we see him acting promptly. But where is the man among us who boasts of his fashionable morality that does this? Cornelius is diligent in all the forms of religion that he knew how to use, and maintains them successfully in his family, and then gladly embraces Jesus Christ as his Saviour as soon as he is preached to liim. This the man among us, who thinks himself £»:ood enoucrh to be saved witlioufc a Saviour, does not do. He improved the light he had, THE CENTHRIOJN' OF CESAKEA. 1G3 and more was given unto him. His good works show that he was under divine influence even when he was ignorant whence it came. He was a subject of free and sovereign grace, and as soon as Jesus is preached to him, he accepts of Him as a Saviour. The man, therefore, among us who attempts to justify his neglect of the Gospel by the case of Cornelius, only condemns himself. And as Cornelius was not a vain, self-righteous man, so neither was he an antinomian. He was no fatalist. His reliction was a working: reliction. Without knowins: anything of Paul, or of his j^reaching or epis- tles, he was obeying, with all his might, the injunction given to the Pliilippians : Work out your own salvation with fear and trembling, for it is God that worketh in you both to will and to do of his good pleasure. Finally^ tliis Idstory illustrates the univer- sality of the Gospel dispensation. We have recently found that a Hebrew missionary (Jo- nah) was sent from Joppa, in a way that he did not choose, to preach to the Ninevites ; and here we fmd Peter sent from the same place to. 164 THE CENTUEION OF CESAEEA. open iij) tlie Idngdom of God to tlie Gentiles. By an extraordinary vision lie is convinced tliat tlie Ligli wall between the Jews and the Gen- tiles was broken down. The Jewish idea that a man was to be saved certainly and simply becanse he was born a Jew is no longer to prevail. It never was cor- rect. God does not save any man because of his birth, rank, talents or external privileges. l^ov does God exclude any man from his favor on account of these things. The New Testament shows most clearly that in the matter of salvation, there is no difference ])etween Jew and Gentile, bond and free. God is no resjiecter of persons. He will not save a man because he is a Jew or because he is an Ano'lo-Saxon. Nor will he condemn him sim- ply because he is a Chinese or a Walla- Walla Diesrer. The whole human race lie before God uj)on the same level — stand on the same plat- form. None are to be saved merely on account of external privileges — none are to be lost simply or merely for the want of them. All are guilty. All have come short of the glory THE CEXTUEIOX OF CESAEEA. 165 of God. If any are saved, ifc must be owing to God's sovereign mercy. And now it liatli pleased liim tliat all men everywhere should believe the Gospel, repent and be saved. " But in every nation, he that feareth him and Vv'ork- eth righteousness, is accepted with him." " The sacrifices of God are a broken spirit : a broken and a contrite heart, O God, thou wilt not despise." VIII. THE CENTUEION OF CESAKEA CONTINUED. 3. — Peter''s Sermon on tlie Occasion of his Con- version. Then Peter opened his mouth, and said, Of a tiuth T perceive that God is no respecter of persons: But in every nation he that fearcth him, and worketh righteousness, is accepted with him. Tlie word ■wlncli God sent unto tlie children of Israel, prcacliing peace by Jesus Christ : (he is Lord of all :) That word (I say), ye know, which was' published throughout all Judea, and began from Galilee, after the baptism which John preached ; How God anointed Jesus of Naza- reth with the Holy Ghost and with power : who went about doing good, and healing all that were oppressed of the devil; for God was with him. And we are witnesses of all things which he did both in the land of the Jews, and in Jerusalem ; whom they slew and hanged on a tree : Ilim -God raised up the third day and showed him openly : N^ot to all the people, but unto witnesses chosen before of God, even to us, who did cat and drink with him after he rose from the dead. And he commanded us to preach unto the people, and to testify that it is he which was ordained of God to be the Judge of quick and dead. To him give all the prophets witness, that through his name whosoever believeth in him shall receive remission of sins. While Peter yet spake these words, the Holy Ghost fell on all them which heard the word. And they of the circumcision which believed IGG THE CEXTUEIOISr OF CESAEEA. 107 were astonislicd* as many as came witli Peter, because tliat on tlie Gentiles also was poured out the giCt of the Holy Ghost. For they heard them speak with tongues, and magnify God. Then answered Peter : Can any man forbid water, that these should not be bap- tized, which have received the Holy Ghost as well as we V And he commanded them to be baptized in the name of the Lord. Then prayed they him to tarry certain days. — Acts x. 34 to end of chapter. This chapter contains an account of tlie re- ception of Gentile converts into tlie Gospel clmrcli without the intermediate state of Juda- ism. The introduction to the conversion of Cornelius (chap. ix. 31-43, and chap. xi. 1-18) is the appendix. The whole history is one of great interest to us. The main facts in regard to this distinguished convert are, his country, his profession, rank and residence, and that we are to regard him as the representative man of all Gentile nations; the first who was received into the Gospel Church after the day of Pente- cost, and without passing through the gate of proselytism to Judaism. This interesting sub- ject of converting grace Ave have found Avhere we sliould not antecedently have looked for such a history ; we have found a 2)ious heathen, a Koman officer, who was devout, feared God, 168 THE CEXTUEIOX OY CESAPwEA. gave alms to all the people, and praj'ed always. We liave, therefore, found the chiirdi of the living God in the Roman army, in the service of a Pagan emperor. And in looking for the means employed for producing such a result, ^Ye discover them to have been ordinary and supernatural ; the light of nature, the strength of the natural conscience, the force of tradition and the direct illumination of the Spirit of almighty grace. And for the purpose of mail- ing known to this distinguished man the way of salvation through Jesus Christ, we have seen that he lias a vision, and an ano^el of God is sent to tell him to send for Peter. Accordingly the centurion's messengers travel some thirty- iive or forty miles from Cesarea to Joppa, and find Peter lodging with one Simon, a tanner, and when he is convinced that it is his duty to go and preach Jesus among the Gentiles, and even to a Eoman centurion, lie lodges the mes- sengers with him till morning, and then goes with them to Cesarea. Olshausen concludes Cornelius was not a proselyte to the Hebrew religion, but was in the j)rocess of becoming THE ce:n^tueion of cesakea. 169 one. Perhaps already so far advanced as to be " a proselyte of tlie gate." But tlie wliole force and meaning of tlie narrative is, we think, lost, if Cornelius liad embraced Judaism. The de- scription given of him is not that of a proselyte, " in any technical or formal, sense, but of a Gen- tile whom divine grace had prepared for the im- mediate reception of the Gospel, without pass- ing through the intermediate state of Judaism, although long familiar with it, and indebted to it for such knowledge of the word of God as he possessed." Prof, J, A. Alexander in loco. But in calling Cornelius a pious heathen we are not to be understood to mean that he was saved without or independent of Jesus Christ. Peter declares that his case proved that who- ever in every nation feareth God and worketh lighteousness, is accepted of him. Righteous- ness toward our fellow-men, and piety toward God, must indeed go together. But no man is justified in the sight of God, except through the mediation of Jesus Christ. But infants, idiots, and such heathen as Cornelius, who have no knowledge of the Son of God, or are inca- 8 170 THE CENTUEION OF CESAEEA. pable of knowing wlio lie is, may nevertheless receive tlie grace of God for liis sake and be saved tlirougli him. It is the opinion of Owen, one of the ablest Biblical interpreters and one of our greatest theologians, that the angels w ho have kept their first estate, are confirmed in glory by the death of Christ. It is on this ground that w^e hope for the salvation of Socra- tes. For while no one is saved independent of Christ, such as we have named may be saved by him without being aware of it till their sal- vation is completed. The character and pre- vious history of Cornelius are therefore worthy of special attention. He was a devout many pious not merely in a heathen sense, hvii feared God., the one only living and true God.^ He was diligent in keeping the seven precepts of Noah, which forbade idolatry, profanity, incest, murder, dishonesty, the eating of blood or of anything strangled, and required all murderers to be put to death. This was the sum of the religion of the whole world, until heathenism began to prevail, and then it Avas still the reli- gion of the Patriarchs, fi'om Abraham to Moses. THE CEXTUEIOjN- of CESAEEA. 171 It is plain from tlie Old Testament that some recognition of Jehovah as tlie Grocl of tlie He- brews, was common amono; tlie suiToundino; nations, and not inconsistent witli tlieir poly- theism ; but Cornelius had abandoned all false gods and all idolatry, and feared the true God in opposition to the gods of heathendom. And lie taught all his family to do the same. He feared God loith all his house. His relio:ion was also a living reality, for he abounded in charities, and vras punctual and spiritual in his prayers, asking wisdom from God to direct liim in all thino;s. IN'ow in the brinofino; of this man into the Church, we see how divine provi- dence arranges the means and provides the agents for j)erforming the parts assigned to them. The providential means used for the centurion's conversion were twofold, a vision to himself and a trance and a vision to Peter. The first was to assure Cornelius that God had a perfect knowledge of his ways, and designed to show him mercy, and direct him what to do in order that he might be saved. The otJier vision to Peter was intended to convince him 1'72 THE CEISTTUEIOIS' OF CESAEEA. that tlie old liigli j)artition wall between Jews and Gentiles was now broken down, and that he should, therefore, meet the advances of Cor- nelius thouo:h he was a Roman centurion. It was a kind providence that took Peter to Joppa and detained him there, for JojDpa was easy of access from Cesarea. And it was a gra- cious providence that overruled the time and the manner of the two visions, and that fur- nished Cornelius suitable men for his message to Joppa, The divine regard for Cornelius is seen moreover in sending an angel to him, and in giving Peter so instructive and im2:)ressive a vision. The sheet let down to him, the Tlione^ was emblematical of the extending of the Gos- pel to all men, and its four corners knit to- gether aptly typical of the four quarters of the globe, south, east, north and west, that are embraced in the Gospel offer. As there was an earnest and worthy purpose in the vision to Cornelius — the vision was not designed to amuse, frighten, or astonish him, but to direct hi^ how to proceed in order that he might know his whole duty — so also, the details of THE CENTUEION OF CESAEEA. 173 Peter's vision, and tlie story of tlie men from Joppa, and tlieir account of God's manifestation to tlieir master, and tJie enlightening of his mind at the time by the Spirit of God, all con- curred in preparing the Eoman officer to meet Peter, and in j^reparing Peter also to meet him. A blessed Providence was working all the time with both of them, though at first they knew it not. How wonderful and gracious was the chain of providence that brought about the conversion of Cornelius ! A vision to him and a trance upon Peter — wonderful coincidences preparing the way for the opening of the door of Christ's kingdom to the Gentiles ! But God is no less wonderful and gracious now than he was then. He is full of compassion. He knows all our trials and temptations. He knoweth our frame and remembereth that we are but dust. How often do we overrate ourselves and underrate God's mercies ! His grace is always sufficient. To him be all the glory. Beghming at Galilee. Verse 37. Please read here from verse 34 to the end of the chapter. Accordino* to Peter and the evano-elists, the 174 THE CENTUEIOK OF CESAEEA. order of our Lord's manifestations is on this wise: He was baj)tizec) by John, then goes into the desert and remains forty days, then returns to John the Baptist, who was at Betha- ny or Bethabara, and made disciples of An- drew, Bartholomew, Peter and Philip, and went afterward .to Capernaum and ^vrought many miracles in Galilee. These thino^s had been a long time so notorious, that Peter presumes Cornelius to be acquainted with them. First. Peter's sermok before the centurion shows that he was now able to understand the natural theology of human races. God is no respecter of persons — that is, the divine favor is not, as we have heretofore taught, confined to Israelites — a pious Gentile, a man who, like Cornelius, fears Godj is accepted in his sight, though he has not the same form of wor- ship that the Jews have, or that we Christians have. A wicked man is not accepted of God on account of his external advantaires. His race and wealth and honors and forms of reli- gion may all be proper in their place, but it is not for them that he is to be saved. The di- THE CENTUEION OF CESAREA. 175 vine rule is to regard tlie lieart and proceed witli men according to tlieir true and real char- acter. It was a fatal mistake, therefore, for his countrymen to think that they could not be lost, however wicked they might be, because they were descended from Abraham ; and that a Gentile could not be saved, however pious his manner of life might be, simply because he was born a Gentile. God is a sovereign, and bestows his gifts, both temporal and spiritual, after his own will and pleasure. Peter's vision presented in the same sheet, animals clean and unclean ; that is, such as were used in Hebrew sacrifices and such as were forbidden according to the ceremonial law. And the force of this vision is also the more clearly apprehended when we remember that unclean animals were considered by the Jews as an image of the Gen- tiles. In the book of the Kevelation of St. John, four beasts and four and twenty eldei^s are supposed to represent the Gentile and Jew- ish churches ; that is, converts from among the heathen and the Jews. "What God hath cleansed that call not thou common or unclean.'' 1T6 THE CENTUKION OF OESAREA. Bengel lias very happily remarked here that it is not an indifferentism of religions, but an indifferency ; that is, an impartiality as to the acceptance of nations that is spoken of. Peter does not say as some of the savans of our day do, that all religions are equally good, but that Avhoever is truly and practically pious in every nation God accepts without any partiality as to their nationality. "Peter is not here deny- ing a sovereign and discriminating choice, but one founded on mere national distinctions. I tiow at length understand that although God bestows his favors as he will, he does not mean to limit them hereafter as of old to any one race of people." Alexander. But was not this always' true? Most certainly. It was true from the beginning, that whoever feared God and wrouglit righteousness was accepted of hiui. But Peter had not perceived it before ; the fault, however, was his own. And his dis- covery of the truth now was not owing to his superior learning or intellectual investigation, but to God's revelations to him. Nor does his discovery add anything to the store of sover- THJD CENTUEION OF CESAREA. 1^7 eign grace. It is not more true in itself now than before; but Lis eyes are opened to see what he had not been able to see. Even as long ago as Cain's transgression, w^e find the Al- mighty remonstrating with him as to his un- reasonable views of sin and his moral condi- tion." " If thou doest well, shalt thou not be accepted? If not well, sin and its punishment lieth at thy door." Gen. iv. 7. It had always been true that the kino^dom of God consisted not in meat and drink, but in righteousness, joy and peace in the Holy Ghost. But now this truth is made more manifest. IN^ow it is clearly seen that in Christ Jesus there is neither circumcision nor uncircumcision, but a new heart — a new creature. The inquiry at the last day will not be as to what nation or coun- try we belonged to, nor whether we were bap- tized in this church or in some other, but how have ^sf^felt and acted toward God and our fel- low men ? Our conduct, our faitli and actions toward God and man will be the subjects ex- amined into at the judgment of Almiglit}^ God. Second. Peter's sermon was an orio-inal dis 178 TK3 CENTUEION OF CESAEEA. course — a new one. It contained trutlis as old as the creation, but not known to him or to his hearers before. Columbus' discovery of Ame- rica did not create the continent, nor did New- ton's discoveries in astronomy call the heavenly bodies into existence. Peter's preaching was new only in the sense of apprehending and ex- plaining the will of God, which on these points he had not before understood. And hence we find his discourse historical, doctrinal, exposi- tory, and practical. And although the Gen- tiles who lived among or near the Jews were more or less acquainted with their religion, and the histories of their Scriptures, they knew little if anything at all about the character, life, doctrines, preaching and precepts or true claims of Jesus as the Messiah, until they were especial- ly instructed by the preaching of the apostles. lliat word^ ye IcnoiVj loliicli was j[)uhlished throiiglioiit all the land of Judea — that is, a re- port of Jesus and his miracles was well known among the people, even from tlie baptism and preaching of John. "And of all that I now preach, we are witnesses of all things which he THE CENTURION OF CESAEEA. 179 did botli in tlie land of tlie Jews and in Jeru- salem, whom tliey slew and hanged on a tree ; Him God raised up the third day, and shewed him openly not to all the people, but unto wit- nesses chosen before of God." Verses 39-41. JVot to all the ])eo2)le. Why not ? 1. Be- cause the times were sadly out of joint ; suspi- cious and seditious. It would have caused commotion or trouble. Some would have cried this is he, and others have said, it is like him ; and others would have denied everything in the confusion, and the validity of the testimony w^ould have been weakened rather than estab- lished. 2. The risrht kind of witnesses were chosen of God, namely : such as knew him in- timately, had known him a long time, and who had nothing to gain by giving false testimony. It was impossible for them to have been mis- taken, or to find a reasonable motive for them to deceive others, nor was their testimony ever successfully imj^eached. They were his daily companions for more than three years before the crucifixion, and '' they did eat and drink with liim after he rose from the dead." They 180 THE CENTrKIOK OF CESAEEA. saw the prints of tlie nails and the gash of the spear, and they saw him ascend into heaven, and if this was not trnej why did not theii enemies produce his body 1 3. The testimony of these eye witnesses was as perfect as if Jesus had been shown to great multitudes. In the law the testimony of two or three is as good as a hundred. One demonstration in mathematics is as conclusive as a thousand. The witnesses were sufficient in number. They were in every way competent. Their knowledge was accu- rate. Their veracity above reasonable suspi- cion. Their motives absolutely unquestion- able. And then/ after all, our conviction of the truth of all these things must rest upon tes- timony. Before our conversion, we have no proof of the truth of religion but upon testi- mony. We do not know anything that we have not seen or felt ourselves, except from the testimony of others. We are shut up to the necessity of receiving con^dction by faith. So- ciety is a rope of sand without a reliance upon human testimony. We cannot live without it. And even if Jesus had been shown with al] THE CENTURIOjS- OF CESAREA. 181 the marks of liis crucifixion palpal)] e to every man, woman, and cliild in tlie Hebrew nation, still ice must believe upon testimony, and tlie testimony we have is as strong as human wit- nesses can make it. Peter, therefore, shows that the resurrection of Jesus was a proof of his Messiahship, and appeals to it as a fact then publicly known, at least to a sufficient number of the most competent witnesses — witnesses chosen before of God to bear this testimony, and in order that they might do so understand- ingly, they were intimately acquainted with him before his death, and they were with him repeatedly and in a great many different places, and at many different times after his resurrec- tion ; and had a great deal of free conversation with him, "who did eat- and drink with him after he rose from the dead." It was impossi- ble for them to be deceived. Nor was there any motive for them to deceive others. Third. T[\q forty -tliirdY&c^Q is the conclusion of Peter's sermon. " To Him give all the pro- phets witness, that through his name, whosoever believeth in him, shall receive remission of sins.'' 182 THE CENTURION OF CESAREA. As if tlie preacher had said, Our testimony is indeed that of honest, competent witnesses, and about things that have recently taken place, and concerning which if we have not told the truth, we can soon be exposed ; but our testi- mony is also confirmed by all the prophets, and they all come to the same conclusion, namely : that whosoever believeth in Jesus of Nazareth shall receive remission of sins, for their testi- mony proves him to be the ano-inted of God, the long-promised Messiah. Like the prophets and apostles, ministers of the Grospel then are to preach to the people concerning Christ. They are his ambassadors, and should them- selves be witnesses of his power to save. The subject matter of their preaching is the remis- sion of sins through faith in his name. That is, that the foro:iveness of sin is to be obtained for his sake; that therefore all men are sinners; that there is need for the atonement ; that it is a faithful saying and worthy of all acceptation that Jesus Christ came into the world to save sinners, even the chief of sinners ; and that the great need of all men is the remission of their THE CENTURION OF CESAEEA. 183 sins, and holiness, without wliicli tliey cannot see God in peace. By tlie taking away — " the remission of sins " — Peter means the removing; of their guilt, power, nature and consequences. And this implies their pardon and our accept- ance with God, reconciliation to Him, sanctifi- cation and comj)lete redemption — a glorious SALVATION. The apostle is careful to speak of the dignity of our Lord. He is the anointed of God ; and yet He was diligent in his work, and died for our redemption. He also reminds Cornelius that the Gospel which he was then hearing was venerable for its antiquity. It has always been the true and only religion for man as a sinner. Fourth. The results of Peter's sermon. " The Holy Ghost fell on them which heard the word." Verse 44, etc. 1. The Holy Ghost, then, is something dis- tinct and separate from the Word ; and yet is necessary to make the Word effectual, even wdien spoken by an inspired man. The Spirit of inspiration ^vas on Peter, and while ])y it lie -was speaking, the Spirit fell on his hearers. 184: THE CEXTURION OF CESAEEA. Tlius was God honored in liis Word, and thus did he honor the word and ministry of his ser- vant. 2. The Holy Ghost fell uj^on these Gentiles hefore they w^ere baptized. So Abraham was justified by faith before he was circumcised. Cornelius and his friends, while yet Peter is preaching, received the Holy Ghost. This proves that baptismal regeneration is not ac- cording to the Gospel. Here was the baptism of the Holy Ghost before and wholly inde- pendent of the bajDtism with water that was subsequently administered. And here also we have a plain proof that God is not confined to any set of ordinances or external signs. The Holy Ghost was no resj^ecter of modes. The flesh profiteth nothing. It is the Spirit that (juickeneth. 3. But it certainly is an error to say that; water baptism is unnecessary to those who have received the baptism of the Holy Spirit, for the very reason given for baptizing them with water is that tliey have been baptized with the Spirit. It is enough for us to know THE CENTURIOl^ OF CESAREA. 185 that baptism with water is a sacrament ap- pointed by our Lord, and that he has made it the door of admission into his visible church, and a seal of the new covenant. Though the Holy One of Israel is not limited in his works, nor fettered 1)y ordinances as we are, yet we liave no right to presume on his grace in any other than in his own appointed ways. We are not to trust in, nor neglect the ordinances of religion. They are divinely appointed chan- nels of grace and salvation, and yet they do not of themselves convey essential grace ; but lead to Christ w^ho is all in all. 4. Can any man fori Id tv at er ? clearly means — who can forbid that water should be brouofht in ? There is no probability — scarcely, indeed, is it possible — that there was any immersion in this case. There was no preparation for such a mode of baptism. The Roman centurion was not likely to have had a baptistery or baptismal font in his quarters. And if he had, and they were going to it, then the form of the expres- sion would have been : Who can forbid us to go to tlte water ? The distinction between ap- 186 THE CENTURION OF CESAEEA. plying the subject for baptism to tlie water, or applying tlie water to tlie subject, is important, for it goes very far toward settling tlie question about tlie mode of baptism. And surely in this case the water was applied to Cornelius, and not Cornelius to the water, and it was applied by pouring or sjDrinkling. " Can any man forbid water" — however rio-id a Jew he may be — however ceremonious he may be — can he forbid water, " that these should not be baptized, who have received the Holy Ghost as well as we?" The argument is perfectly conclusive. " What God hath cleansed, that call not thou common or unclean." Shall we deny the sign to those who have received from God himself the thino; sio-nified? Are not those on whom God has bestoAved the irrace of the covenant plainly entitled to the seals of that covenant ? Surely we should follow God's example, and receive those into our communion whom he hath taken into fellowship) with hini^ self by giving them his Holy Spirit. Tliis rule, applied to the subjects and mode of baptism, and also to the order of ministers and mode of THE CENTUEION OF CESAEEA. 187 tlieir consecration and worsliip, would teacli us to be liberal in our views, and to love all wlio love our Lord Jesus Christ. A few points of Christian character and of practical divinity developed in this history of the conversion of Cornelius, are worthy of a distinct notification. 1. One cannot but observe it as a remark- able feature in aj^ostolic character, that they were self-denying and disinterested in their la- bors. After the day of Pentecost, where and when do we find them wantino; in courao-e, or showing any symptoms of selfishness ? ISTever do we find them j)ursuing schemes of ambition or of worldly glory. They were so intent on the glory of their Master and the salvation of the souls of men that they were themselves con- tent to be forgotten and overlooked. They were never tired of^ though sometimes weary in^ the service of God. 2. In tlie conversion of a Itoman centurion toe have a proof of the poiver of the Gospel as well as of its expansive ness. It is strange the apostles should have con 188 THE CEISTTUEION OF CESAEEA. ceivecl tliat tlie command to go and disciple all nations, meant only sucli nations or persons as Lad embraced tlie Jewish religion; yet tliis was their idea at first, and it was very difficult to remove it. But liere we have an illustration of God's method of honoring his word, the preaching of which he has made the great in- strument or means of converting and saving men. Cornelius was not taught what to do by any direct illumination. Nor w^as the angel employed himself to preach the Gos2:)el, but to introduce the preacher — to tell Cornelius where to find Peter, who should tell him what to do. This is a striking demonstration that it is God's will for every one to do just what he is told to do, and also of the worth of combining human and divine agency in the work of Christian- izing the world. It was as easy for the angel to have told Cornelius of Jesus as to tell him of Peter. But the divine purpose was to bring Peter and Cornelius together — a Jew and a Gentile. The supernatural messages to Peter all carried their great lesson with them, until Peter is prepared to go to a Gentile. God thus THE CEXTUEIOX OF CESAPwEA. 189 opened up Peter's lieart to the largeness and liberality of the Gospel economy, and prepared the way for liini to meet Cornelius, and in the meantime Cornelius lia-s been so prepared, that when he is brought into personal contact with Peter, his mind is opened, and Peter's words convey life and power to him. We must not forget that this was done by divine aid. The Iloly Ghost fell on them. God hath joined means and ends together. God's works of creation and providence, and also of grace, are all wonderful. They all display his wisdom, power and goodness. In Cornelius we see that the Holy One of Israel is not limited. Oracles are good, but no mere outward rites of religion are sufficient. They are helps. They are not to be despised or treated Avith neglect, neither are we to trust in them. To what extent God operates on the minds of individual heathens we know not. A remarkable case is recorded of the Flathead Indians of the Rocky Moun- tains, Avho sent a deputation of four to St. Louis, in the days of General Clarke, to know what was taught in the white man's Bil^le. 190 THE CETfTURIOTf OF CESAEEA. Speaking witli reverence, it was just as easy for God to liave commanded tlie ang-el to tell Cornelius what to do, as to tell liim to instruct Cornelius to send to Joppa for Peter. This would have saved the centurion a great deal of trouble and time ; but this was not Grod's me- thod. The means appointed for the conversion of the world must be honored. The treasure is indeed in earthen vessels, that the excellency of the power may be of God and not of man. It hath pleased God by the foolishness of preach- ing to save them that believe. Angels may be employed in carrying messages of love to other worlds. They have summoned some of our own race in past ages, to listen to the glad tid- ings of free grace ; but God's great i3lan is to convert men chiefly by the preaching of the Gos- j)el by men of like 2^ccS'Sio?i-s with ourselves — men who are converted and called to the work by the Holy Spirit ; who can sympathize with us, and tell us from their own experience what religion is, and how sinners are to be saved. 3. In admiring; the excellent character of Cor- nelius, we must be careful to distinguish be- THE CENTURIOI^ OF CESAEEA. 101 tween the 2^ ^'ociirln^j cause of Lis salvation and the evidences of Lis piety. And we must avoid, as we liave already said in tLe former discourses, confounding Lis rnoralify witL \ii^ piety ^ or sub- stituting Lis alms and j^rayers for Lis accept- ance of CLrist wLen j)reacLed to Lim. Exem- plary and amiable and sincere in Lis bearing as a man and as a soldier, Lis moralitv led liim to CLrist. He did not tLink of depending on it and of rejecting CLrist because of it. His piety was personal, earnest, social and domestic, as if Le Lad been trained in tLe camp of tLat Leroic general and prince, wLo said most firmly be- fore an assembled nation : '' As for me," even if you are faitLless, " as for me and my Louse, we will serve tLe Lord." His i)iety and works of rigLteousness were accepted of Cod, but did not merit divine grace. And so now we must use tLe means of grace, for altLougL tliey do not of themselves save, yet we Lave no rigLt to expect salvation witLout tLem. 4. Nor sliould we forget to observe tLe mo- ral courage of tliis Eoman. He breaks away first from tLe idols Le was tauglit to A^orsLip 192 THE cejN^tueioin' of cesarea. in liis yoiitli, and adopts the religion of NoaL ; and tlien lie lias tlie courage to own his change of religion and to practise its holy precepts. And this he does in the face, firstj of the con- tempt which all the world had for the Jews, and es^Decially for their religion ; and secondly^ in opposition to the law of the empire that for- bade any Koman citizen to receive any strange or new relie^ion. But he was obedient to the heavenly vision and sent for Peter, and then heard his preaching, and submitted to the terms of admission into the Christian Church. He w^as baptized and became a member of Christ's Church. And it may be, that it is just here many of my hearers fail. They have knowledge. It may be they are even learned ; but they have not moral courage. "Without some touch of the heroic sj^irit, there is not much that is great or good effected in our world. In every department of life, it seems to us the great want of our times is courage to do right. In business, there are so many temptations to do wrong, that a man of a weak and vacillating temj^er is almost sui*e THE CENTUEION OF CESAEEA. 193 to go astray. And in the religious enterprises of the day, there is need not only of an honest heart, but of a courage and a resolu- tion that will shrink from no toil or weari- ness. That religion is very weak that evapo- rates in sentiment. Knowledge is worth but little that is not applied. Elegant culture is a gracefid ornament, but it does not renew the heart. It is but as the pale moonbeams on the waves, that can do nothing to stop their rag- ing. W licit our age wants is moral courage — high moral integrity united to a heart that knows no fear. And yet it is much more rare to find a man of true moral courao-e than to find one of amiable qualities, or of learning. There are thousands who '* See the good, and approve it too, Abhor the wrong, and yet the wrong pursue," because they have not firmness of principle, nor com'age to make a stand against the WTong. We find Josej)h of Arimathea, an honorable counsellor, a disciple of Jesus, " but secretly, for fear of the Jews," He was convinced that 194 THE CENTUEION OF CESAEEA. Jesus was tlie Messiah, and designed, when he should be acknowledged and proclaimed as such, to profess his faith in him ; but God gave him grace to declare his faith sooner than he desi finned. This honorable man was a sincere but a timid and faint-hearted disciple, and it is indeed wonderful to see how heroic he became in pi'ofessing his attachment to a dead Christ, whom living he had not had courage to own. But it is substantially so now. Some men in- dulge the hope that they are Christians, or that God has been gracious to their souls, and yet delay to make an oj>en profession of their faith. They in effect conceal their love for God and their hope of salvation through fear of their fellow men. This is a dangerous practice. It is contrary to the plainest commands of God our Saviour. He has again and again told us, we must take up the cross and follow him. If we are ashamed of him before men, he will be ashamed of us before his Father and his holy angels. If we do' really love him, we will keep his commandments. If we have satisfactory evidence that Jesus is Christ, we have no right THE CEl^TURION OF CESAEEA. 195 to witlihold our testimony in liis behalf. We have no risrht to hide our li2:ht under a bushel ; nor is it to be expected that we shall have any comfort in religion, if we do not obey all the known commandments of God. What, then, are the commandments of God which are unto life? We must at least have faith in him and in his word, and to discern the Lord's body, before we are pre- pared to take the holy sacrament. Christ says : " Do this in remembrance of me." But you say: How can I know whether or not I am prepared to obey this command ? We an- swer by asking you, Do you believe in your heart that Jesus Christ is the Son of God and the Saviour of sinners, as he is set forth in the Gospel ? Do you feel that you are a sinner in the sight of God, and that you must trust in Christ or perish in your sins? And are you resolved, by the help of God, that you will forsake all known sins and try to live a Christian life ? As far as you know yourself, do you accept of Jesus Christ as the only Sa- 196 THE CEiq^TUEIO]^ OF CESAKEA. viour, and put all your trust in liim ? Then we say, Come and welcome. Come to the Lord's supper, and whosoever cometh unto Him shall be saved. IX. Paul's voyage and shipwreck. And when it was determined that we should sail into Italy, they delivered Paul, and certain other prisoners, unto one named Julius, a cen- turion of Augustus' band. And, entering into a ship of Adramyttium, we launched, meaning to sail by the coast of Asia ; one Aris- tarchus, a Macedonian of Thessalonica, being with us. And the next day we touched at Sidon. And Julius courteously entreated Paul, and gave him liberty to go unto his friends to refresh himself And when we had launched from thence, we sailed under Cyj^rus, because the winds were contrary. And when we had sailed over the sea of Cilicia and Pamphilia, we came to Myra, a city of Lycia. And there the centurion found a ship of Alexandria sail- ing into Italy ; and he put us therein. And when we had sailed slowly many days, and 197 198 Paul's voyage and shipweeck. scarce were come over against Cnidus, the wind not suffering us, we sailed under Crete, over against Salmone ; and, hardly passing it, came unto a ]3lace which is called The Fair Havens ; nigh whereunto was the city of Lasea. Now when much time was spent, and when sailing was now dangerous, because the fast was now already past, Paul admonished them, and said unto them, Sirs, I perceive that this voyage will be with hurt and much damage, not only of the lading and ship, but also of our lives. Nevertheless the centurion believed the master and the owner of the ship, more than those things which were spoken by Paul. And because the haven was not commodious to win- ter in, the more part advised to depart thence also, if by any means they might attain to Phe- nice, and there to winter; which is a haven of Crete, and lieth toward the southwest and northwest. And when the south wind blew softly, supposing that they had obtained their purpose, loosing thence, they sailed close by Crete. But not lonsr after there arose aficainst it a tempestuous wind, called Euroclydon, Paul's voyage akd shipwreck. 199 And wlien tlie sliip was caught, and could not bear up into the wind, we let her drive. And iTinning under a certain island which is called Clauda, ^Ye had much work to come by the boat: which when they had taken up, they used helps, undergirding the ship; and, fear ing lest they should fall into the quicksands, strake sail, and so were driven. And we being exceedingly tossed with a tempest, the next day they lightened the ship; and the third day we cast out with our own hands the tackling of the ship. And when neither sun nor stars in many days appeared, and no small tempest lay on us, all hope that we should be saved was then taken away. But after long abstinence, Paul stood forth in the midst of them, and said. Sirs, ye should have hearkened unto me, and not have loosed from Crete, and to have gained this harm and loss. And now I exhort you to be of good cheer : for there shall be no loss of any man's life among you, but of the ship. For there stood by me this night the angel of God, whose I am^ and whom I serve, saying. Fear not, Paul : 200 Paul's voyage aistd shipwreck. thou must be brought before Cesar: and, lo, God liatli given thee all them that sail with thee. Wherefore, sirs, be of good cheer: for I believe God, that it shall be even as it was told me. Howbeit we must be cast upon a certain island. But when the fourteenth night was come, as we were driven u^ and down in Adria, about midnight the shipmen deemed that they drew near to some country ; and sounded, and found it twenty fathoms : and when they had gone a little further, they sounded again, and found it fifteen fathoms. Then fearing lest they should have fallen upon rocks, they cast four anchors out of the stern, and wished for the day. And as the shipmen were about to flee out of the ship, when they had let down the boat into the sea, under color as thoug-h thev would have cast anchors out of the fore ship, Paul said to the centurion and the soldiers, Except these abide in the ship, ye cannot be saved. Then the soldiers cut off the ropes of the boat, and let her fall off. And while the day was coming on, Paul besought them all to take meat, saying. This day is the fourteenth Paul's voyage aot) shipweeck. 201 day that ye liave tarried and continued fasting, having taken nothing. Wherefore I j^ray you to take some meat : for this is for your health : for there shall not a hair fall from the head of any of you. And when he had thus spoken, he took bread, and gave thanks to Grod in presence of them all : and when he had broken it, he began to eat. Then were they all of good cheer, and they also took some meat. And we were in all in the ship two hundred threescore and sixteen souls. And when they had eaten enough, they lightened the ship, and cast out the wheat into the sea. And when it was day, they knew not the land: but they discovered a certain creek with a shore, into the which they were minded, if it were possi- ble, to thrust in the ship. And when they had taken u-p the anchors, they committed tliem- selves unto the sea, and loosed the rudder bands, and hoisted up the mainsail to the wind, and made toward shore. And falling into a place where two seas met, they ran the ship aground ; and the forepart stuck fast, and re- mained unmovable, but the hinder part was 202 Paul's voyage and shtpweeck. broken with the violence of the waves. And the soldiers' counsel was to kill the prisoners, lest any of them should swim out, and escape. But the centurion, Avilling to save Paul, kept them from their purpose ; and commanded that they which could swim should cast themselves first into the sea, and get to land : and the rest, some on boards, and some on broken pieces of the ship. And so it came to pass, that they escaped all safe to land. And when they were escaped, then they knew that the island was called Melita. And the barbarous j^eople showed us no little kind- ness: for they kindled a fire, and received us every one, because of the present rain, and be- cause of the cold. And when Paul had gath- ered a bundle of sticks, and laid them on the fire, there came a viper out of the heat and fastened on his hand. And when the barba- rians saw the venomous beast hang on his hand, they said among themselves, No doubt this man is a murderer, whom, though he hatli escaped the sea, yet vengeance suifereth not to live. And he shook off the beast into the fire, PAULS VOYAGE AND SHIPWEECK. 203 and felt no liarm. Howbeit they looked when lie should have swollen, or fallen down dead suddenly: but after they had looked a great while,* and saw no harm come to him, they chanired their minds, and said that he was a god. In the same quarters were possessions of the chief man of the island, whose name was Pub- lius; who received us, and lodged us three days courteously. And it came to pass, that the father of Publius lay sick of a fever and of a bloody flux : to whom Paul entered in, and prayed, and laid his hands on him, and healed him. So when this was done, others also, which had diseases in the island, came, and were healed : who also honored us with many hon- ors ; and when we departed, they laded us with such things as were necessary. And after three months we departed in a ship of Alex- andria, which had wintered in the isle, whose sign was Castor and Pollux. And landing at Syracuse, we tarried there three days. And from thence we fetched a compass, and came to E-hegium: and after one day the south wind 204 Paul's voyage and shipweeck. blew, and we came the next day to Piiteoli : where we found brethren, and were desh'ed to tarry with them seven days : and so we went toward Rome. And from thence, w^hen the brethren heard of us, they came to meet us as far as Appii-forum, and The Three Taverns : whom when Paul saAV, he thanked God, and took courage. And when we came to Rome, the centurion delivered the prisoners to the captain of the guard : but Paul was suffered to dwell by himself with a soldier that kept him. And it came to pass, that after three days Paul called the chief of the Jews together : and when they were come together, he said unto them, Men and brethren, though I have committed nothing against the people, or customs of our fathers, yet was I delivered prisoner from Jeru- salem into the hands of the Romans. Who, when they had examined me, would have let me go, because there was no cause of death in me. But wlien the Jews spake against it, I was constrained to appeal unto Caesar; not that I had aught to accuse my nation of. For this cause therefore have I called for you, to PAULS VOYAGE AND SHEPWEECK. 205 see yoiij and to speak with you : because that for the hope of Israel I am bound with this chain. And they said unto him, We neither received letters out of Judea concerning thee, neither any of the brethren that came showed or spake any harm of thee. But we desire to hear of thee what thou thinkest: for as con- cerning this sect, we know that everywhere it is spoken against. And when they had ap- pointed him a day, there came many to him into his lodging ; to whom he expounded and testified the kingdom of God, persuading them concerning Jesus, both out of the law of Moses, and out of the prophets, from morning till evenino'. And some believed the thino^s which were spoken, and some believed not. And when they agreed not among themselves, they departed, after that Paul had spoken one word. Well spake the Holy Ghost by Esaias the 2^roj)het unto our fathers, saying. Go unto this people, and say. Hearing ye shall hear, and shall not understand; and seeing ye shall see, and not perceive : for the heai't of this people is waxed gross, and their ears arc dull of jiear 206 Paul's voyage and shipweeck. ing, and their eyes liave they closed ; lest tliey should see with their eyes, and hear with their ears, and understand with their heart, and should be converted, and I should heal them. Be it known therefore unto you, that the salvation of God is sent unto the Gentiles, and that they will hear it. And when he had said these words, the Jews departed, and had great reasoning among themselves. And Paul dwelt two whole years in his own hired house, and received all that came in unto him, preaching the kingdom of God, and teaching those things which concern the Lord Jesus Christ, with all confidence, no man forbidding him. Acts xxvii. a?icl xxviii. X. JULIUS, THE CENTUEIOI^ OF PAUL's VOYAGE TO EOME. The island of PauVs sliipwreck tvas called Melita, wliicli we have no doubt is the Malta of our times. Ahnost all the local traditions of Malta, about Paul and the incidents or cir- cumstances of the voyage, and of the wrecking of the vessel as given in the Acts, are aj^proved of by Dr. Kitto, Mr. Smith, of Jordan-Hill, and by other recent and able writers.* So well * A knowledge of the ships and navigation of the ancients, and of tlie form and structure of Greek and Roman vessels, and of the way in which they were worked, and of the trade and travel carried on in the apostle's day between Alexandria and Europe, removes many of the difficulties that at first seem to rise up in the minds of inqiiiring students as they read the history of Paul's voyage to Rome. In the great and scholarly works of the late Admiral Sir Charles Penrose, and also of James Smith, Esq., and of Conybearc and Ilowson, this whole subject has been ably treated. The eye of a sailor and the l)eu of the scholar have been so united in these works for the eluci- dation of the voyage and wrecking of the apostle, that but little more can be desired. 207 208 JULIUS THE CEXTUEION. satisfied are we of this, that we consider it time lost to refute the opinion that the island of the shipwreck was Venice or Meleda in Dalmatia. The Malta of our day was the Melita of the Acts. ISTor is there any difficulty about Adria^ for the Adriatic sea, according to ancient usage, means all the Mediterranean between Greece on the one side and Italy and Sicily on the other. It was sometimes called the Gulf of Adria. And ivlien it ivas determined — decided upon by Festus the Roman governor. This does not mean, however, that any violence was done either to the free-agency of the apostle or of the Koman governor. It Vv^as God's purpose that Paul should stand before Caesar in Eome ; and for the fulfilling of that purj^ose, the apostle himself is left free to make his appeal to the emperor, and the authorities acting according to their own judgment and pleasure determined to send him. We probably means Paul, Timo- thy, Aristarchus, and Luke the writer, as well as other prisoners. Paul's companions were not sent as criminals or prisoners, but went as JULIUS THE CENTURION. 209 his friends and fellow laborers wlio felt a deep sympatliy for him, and thus desired to show their love for the cause in which he was labor- ing and for which he suffered so much. This Aristarchus is j)robably the same who is mentioned Col. iv. 10, and if so, for some cause or otherj he was also made at a subsequent time the apostle's fellow-prisoner. The cen- turion of Capernaum, and the centurion in command at the crucifixion, saw and heard the Lord Jesus themselves in the days of his flesh ; but Cornelius, the centurion of Cesarea, and Julius, the centurion who had charge of Paul during his voyage and shipwreck on his way to Eome, do not appear to have known anything of our Lord except what they learned from the apostles Peter and Paul. And though this fact may seem scarcely worthy of note, it is not without signification. For it proves to us that the Gosj^el preached by Christ's ministers has the same effect that it had when preached l)y himself And this is according to his promise and to his prayer in be- half of all who should hear of him and believe 210 JULIUS THE CENTUEION. upon him tlirougli tlie Word ; that is, the doc- trines which he commanded his ministering servants to teach and preach in all the world. Accordingly, when Peter preached to the cen- turion at Cesarea, and Paul became acquainted with the centurion who had charge of him to take him to Rome, we suppose the effect was similar to that produced on those who saw our Lord's miracles and witnessed his conduct amid his sufferings and in death. 1. The circumstances under which we first make the acquaintance of the centurion Julius, the E-oman officer in command during the voy- age and shipwreck of Paul on his way to Rome, are worthy of consideration. When the ship struck and was about to be dashed to pieces by the violence of the sea, we find the military authority of Rome on board the wrecking ship. A number of prisoners were crowded together in that ship on their way to the imperial city. It was natural at such a time that every one should try to save himself, and that the prison- ers should not only save themselves from a grave in the sea, but escape also from their JULIUS THE CENTURION. 211 keepers. But tlie soldiers knowing tliat if this sliould happen they would be blamed, pro- j)osed to put the prisoners to death to prevent the possibility of censure for their escape. Here it is that the centurion Julius arrests our attention. Being in command, his authority is used to prevent the killing of the prisoners. Not that he was less familiar than his soldiers to deeds of cruelty and blood, but because of his regard for Paul. He does not seem to have had any care for the lives of the other prisoners, but wishing to . save Paul, he kept them from their purpose. — Acts xxvii. 43. But why did the centurion desire to save the apostle? We are told Avhen it was decided that Paul should be sent into Italy, that he was delivered with other prisoners " unto one named Julius, a centurion of Auo:ustus' band, and that when the ship touched at Sid on," Julius courteously entreated Paul, and gave him liberty to go unto his friends to refresh himself. Verses 1-3. Here is a happy contrast. A military officer shows more kindness to the apostle than his own countrymen, or the civil 212 JULIUS THE CENTUEIOK authorities liave done. Felix and Festus and tlie Jews were unreasonable in tlieir enmity and prejudices. But should we not expect, in the military profession, and on the part of those who are educated to be gentlemen and to have the command of bodies of men, and to be in- trusted with the most important events and negotiations, such lofty sentiments, such a keen sense of honor, and such nobleness and gene- rosity as to overcome all prejudice, and to treat those in their power not only with justice but with kindness. This we are prepared to ex- pect from this man's education and profession, and such was in fact the conduct of all the cen- turions referred to in the Gospel. Julius belono^ed to Auo;ustus' band — Cohors Augusta — ^was the emperor's body guard. Lejp- silts on Tacitus, His. lib. ii., says he has identi- fied the very name of this cohort on an ancient marble. (See also Suetonius' Nero.) This band, therefore, has no reference to the city of Sebaste, but to service in immediate connection with the emperor. It was a cohort belonging particularly to the emperor, or had charge of JULIUS THE CEIS^TURION". 213 his j)alace and person. Julius, then, was not an ordinary officer. He had been selected be- cause of his eminent character and services for a post of peculiar trust. He must then have possessed more intelligence than most others; was no doubt well acquainted with the world ; a good judge of men ; has travelled and read much ; conversed with the most intelli2:ent of many countries and nations ; is qualified to give information and advice at a moment's notice to the emperor. He has been to Judea, and is now returning to Rome, and the prisoners are put under his care. He was able at once to see that Paul, though a man of rather small stature and no great bodily presence, was, however, no common man. Paul was now full of years. Has been a minister of Jesus Christ for nearly thirty years. And as a man's appearance, his expression of face, is modified by the society he keeps, the business he follows, and more than all by the sentiments he indulges, so no doubt to some extent the apostle's countenance was an index to his principles and feelings. There are of course exceptions, but somehow or other 214 JULIUS THE CENTURIOIT. religious creeds are seen even in the sliaj)e and expression of men's faces. Long continued thought and deep feelings mould the counte- nance. Paul's face, then, must by this time have beamed with lofty motives and heavenly hopes. JSTor would such an observing officer as this centurion fail to become acquainted with the malice of his enemies, or to have heard of the selfishness and bribery of his judges, nor would he overlook the zeal and self-denial, and ungrudging, whole-hearted devotion of the apos- tle to the service of Christ. How lomr the cen- turion has been absent from Rome we do not know ; nor how long he was at Cesarea ; but it is probable as Paul was a Roman citizen, and had been two years in prison at Cesarea, that he had learned somethins: of him before the voyage commenced. And as Paul was famed for learning and. eloquence, and had several times been permitted to make an oration in his behalf, it is not at all impossible-^but is in- deed very probable — that Julius had at some time heard tlie apostle ^^lead his cause before some of the distinguished persons of Cesarea; JULIUS THE CENTUEIOI^. 215 had heard the wonderful story of his conversion ; and liow he had been persecuted, and was still willing to 2:)reach and suffer and die for the faith he had once endeavored to destroy. It is not askino* too much to believe that he was more or less acquainted with Paul's history be- fore he received him as a prisoner to be con- veyed to Rome. And as a man of the world, with the clear eye of a well-educated and tra- velled officer, and comparatively without the malice or prejudices of sects or race, he was satisfied that Paul was a man greatly misrepre- sented and abused, and was a man of an extra- ordinaiy character. He could see that Paul was a man of great learning and of intellectual power ; that he was not ignorant, vain, self- conceited, nor morbid, nor devoted to pleasure, nor file seeking of fame nor power. He felt satisfied that his motives were pure ; that he was neither knave nor fanatic. There was something about the apostle that at once attracted the intelligent Koman officer's kind regards, and this impression would only be the deeper, if he had previously learned anything 216 JULIUS THE CENTUr.ION. of liis character or of liis doctrines tliat caused liim to feel a peculiar interest in liim, and wish to preserve his life for their sake. AYhat was it, then, that attracted the kind regards of the Koman officer? It could not have been his sacerdotal character. For Paul was not of the Levitical tribe, nor did he wear priestly robes. Indeed it would seem that but few Jewish priests, but few of the tribe of Levi, ever be- came Gospel ministers. We read in Acts vi. 7, that a great company of the priests were obe- dient to the faith ; but we do not hear of them again. There is no record of any of them hav- ing become Christian ministers. At all events Paul ^vas not a priest. There is in fact but one priest who has jDower to mediate between God and man : the " great High Priest, who has passed into the heavens." The Church has had prophets and apostles, and now has evangelists, pastors and teachers, but only one priest — Jesus Christ. It was not, therefore, because Paul claimed any peculiar attention as a priest that the centurion desired to save him. The Adramittium of the narrative was not JULIUS THE CENTUKION. 217 Hadrumatum of Africa, as some say, and liave thereby brought confusion into the history, but tlie Adramittium of Asia Minor. At Myra of Lycia, a flourishing seaport in Asia Minor, the centurion transfers the prisoners into a ship laden with corn, bound from Alexandria to Rome. Tliis was a large ship — live hundred tons — having on board, beside her cargo, tAVO hundred and seventy-six persons. The voyage with corn from Egypt, which was then the granary of the Roman Empire, to Italy was a common one,* and this course from Alexandria to" Puteoli the ordinary one. Lardiner has also proved that it was common at this time to send prisoners from Judea and other provinces to Rome. ISTor was it strange that this vessel was found at Lycia, for not having the compass, they pursued a circuitous route, scarcely ever going out of sight of land. The progress of this vessel seems to have been beset with many dangers. And by and by, we find the centurion following the advice of the master and owner rather than taking the counsel of Paul, This was natural. Paul 10 218 JULIUS THE CEXTUEIOTq-. was neither owner nor pilot, nor was lie an old mariner. The centurion may have thought this is a subject out of his line ; but still he found, in the end, that Paul was right, even about navigating the ship. Read here verses 9, 10, 11, 12 of chapter xxvii. As nearly as we can make it out, the case was on this wise : The direct course of the ship would have been along the north coast of the island of Candia, anciently called Crete. This island is about forty miles broad and one hun- dred and eighty miles long. It would, there- fore, have been a guide to the mariners for at least two hundred miles. But the wind blow- ing from the northwest, instead of going along the northern shore of this island, they steered under its shelter on the south side, until they passed Salmone and came to a place called Fair Havens. Here a difference of o^^inion arises as to what should be done. As they had neither compass nor steam, and the winter was upon them, and the safe season for navi- gating the Mediterranean was over, it was pro- JULIUS THE ce:s^turio]^. 219 posed to spend tlie winter tliere or at some port on tlie soiitliern coast of Candia, or to double Cajye Matala, and try to get to Plieniee, some fifty miles fartlier, where tliere was a more commodious harbor. Paul advised them to remain at • Fair Havens ; but the o^Dinion of the master and ship-owner j)revailed, and they attempted to reach Phenice, and with what result we shall soon see. Accordingly they hoist anchor and give their sails to the breeze for the port of Phenice, and with a few hours of fair wind would have reached it ; but a ty- phoon comes after them from the northeast, and it is in vain they try to get to the desired haven. All they can do is to let the vessel scud — drive before the wind — and instead of gaining Phenice, they come up under the lee of Clauda, an island twenty or thirty miles south of Phenice. But now something must be done, for they are rushing to certain destruc- tion on the quicksands of Africa. But it se^ms that then as now, every ship had a boat or boats, and that as the ships in those times for the most part crept along the coast and kept 220 JULIUS THE CENTURION. lip ail almost every clay's communication witli the land, so the boat was not taken up and secured on deck as with ns at the commence ment of the voyage, but was kept on the water attached to tlie stern by a roj^e, ready for use, as we have often seen them tied to the steam- ers on the Mississippi Kiver. Hence we are told that they secured the boat — that is, took it upon board the vessel so as to keep it from being swamped, and " undergirded the shijD " * ■ — "frapped it," which means passing strong ro2:)es under and around her hull, to strengthen and prevent her from springing a leak or going to pieces under the blows of the heavy seas that struck her. Then they "strake sail,"f that is, set the * Lord Anson, in his voyage round the worhl, speaking of a Span- ish man of war in a storm, says, *' they were obhgcd to throw over- board all their upper-deck guns, and take six turns of the cable round the ship, to prevent her opening." Other cases are also cited in the books. f Several expressions arc used here that are obscure. It is evi- dent they lightened tlie ship by casting over the cumbrous wares. The taclding means anchors, cables and baggage not absolutely neces- sary. By strakivcj sail is probably meant letting down the mast, or cutting it away. They were already under bare poles. JULIUS THE CENTURION. 221 storm sails so as to steady tlie vessel, and ste.ered as nearly as tliey could in a north- westerly course. But on tlie third day, the tempest continuing violent, they threw over- board the heavy tackling of the ship. This proves that she was now leaking, and that they judged it necessary to lighten her as much as possible. Then followed many days of dark- ness and most painful uncertainty. Neither sun nor stars appeared — no compass — no vision of land. They knew not what moment they might be dashed to pieces on rocks, or driven on a lee shore. The vessel is strained more and more, and the leaking increases. If she is not dashed to pieces, she must soon sink in the waves. What wild emotions — Avliat fee]in<^'*s. fears or hopes must have filled the minds of this crowd of two hundred and seventy-six per- sons, as they contemplated the prospect of be- ing wrecked on some unknown coast ! But now we see the blessino; of liavinij: a man of God on l)oard. One whose lieart is stayed upon God, and can hold intercourse with heaven by prayer. 222 - JULIUS THE CENTURION. 2. "But after long abstinence, Paul stood fortli in tlie midst of them, and said, Sirs, ye should have hearkened unto me, and not have loosed from Crete, and to have gained this harm and loss. And jiow I exhort you to be of good cheer: for there shall be no loss of any man's life among you, but of the ship. For there stood by me this night the angel of God, whose I am and whom I serve, saying. Fear not, Paul ; thou must be brought before Csesar ; and lo, God hath given thee all them that sail with thee. Wherefore, sirs, be of good cheer : far I believe God, that it shall be even as it was told me. Howbeit, we must be cast upon a certain island." Whose I €1771, with the correlative, whom I serve, is the whole of religion. To belong to God is the height of our faith and happi- ness. Every blessing is comprehended in this — that we are God's, and that we serve him with all our mind and with all our soul and with all our strength. Surely these were glad JULIUS THE CENTUEION. 223 tidings — good news, and emphatic, too, every one is to be saved — not one of the two hundred and seventy-six persons on board is to be lost by the wreck. They were all sinners, and all except three or four, heathens, yet all are to be saved for the sake of Paul, the servant of Jesus Christ. The wicked are often delivered from temporal afflictions for the sake of the pious among whom they live. The tares are allowed to grow for the sake of the wheat. This was God's gracious opportunity. It was man's ex- tremity. Helpless, comfortless, cheerless, hoj)e- less — it was God's favored moment to a23]3ear for the lielp of his servants. " And God shall help her, and that right early," that is most op- portunely. And we have here also an illustra- tion of the apostle's sincerity and boldness. For if he is not truly authorized as a messenger of heaven to make such a promise — if he is de- ceived himself, or is seeking to imj^ose upon others — soon his prophecy will fail and destroy his reputation and show tliat the faith he pro- fessed is a misera1)le delusion. But he says, I know that it shall be just as I have said, for 224' JULIUS THE cexturio:n'. " there stood by me tliis niglit the angel of God," and I know it shall be as God has said. Two things here must have arrested the atten- tion of the other prisoners, and especially . the master and ship-owner ; namely, that they had made a mistake about leaving Fair Havens, and that Paul's sagacity as a seaman was to be relied on more than theirs ; and, secondly, that now he had what they had not, a communication from the Supreme Being — " the angel of God, whom he served" — ^had declared to him the particulars of their escape which he had gladly announced to them. For the apostle was care- ful to let them know that it was not from his own natural sagacity or superior seamanship, nor by magic or witchcraft, that he was al>le to give them so joyful an assurance, but that it was from the God of heaven whom he served. He honors his blessed master by telling them that all he knew on the subject had been re- vealed to him. The centurion must now have felt more than ever an interest in him, when he discovered that he held direct communication with heaven. If he was favorably impressed JULIUS THE CEIS^TURION". 225 witli Ills prisoner when lie first received Lira at Cesarea — if lie felt an interest in liim because of liis learning, eloquence, sincerity and zeal, or because lie seemed to liim to be a persecuted man, having a clear liead, an lionest lieart and a good conscience. Low mucli more may we suppose that he felt concerned for his safety, when he saw that he was filled with the in- spiration of the most high God ? If he had admired him before, because his skill and know- ledge had enabled him to give an advice about wintering at Fair Havens, which was better than the opinion of the owner of the ship, and wiser than all the wisdom of the army and navy on board the ship, how much more must he have reverenced him now as one whose wis- dom was directly from heaven ? And must he not also have been constrained to believe that the religion taught by such a man was the true religion ? And the history is the more remarkable just here, T)ecause it shows how completely Paul, though a prisoner, is now the actual master of the vessel. In fact, he is in cnnmand, and not 10* 226 JULIUS THE CENTURION. tlie sliip's master nor tlie captain of tlie guard. It was under Paul's orders the soldiers cut the ropes of the boat and let her fall into the sea, thereby seeming to dei^rive themselves of the best, if not the only means left for effecting their escape. Here, again, we see how true Gourage snakes one a majority. We see how completely a man of mind — one mind self-pos- sessed and stout-hearted, and at perfect peace with itself, and stayed* upon God, gains an ascendency over others. Truly, it was sublime. Paul the despised Jew — the prisoner under vari- ous charges in custody of soldiers — on his way to the Mamertine dungeons — yes, this is the man who, when all on board are exhausted by anxiety, fear, toil and fasting, stands up and says: "I pray you," excellent sirs, master, ship- owner, Roman commandant, and soldiers and mariners, fellow prisoners — all of you, " I pray you take some meat : for this is for your health : for there shall not a hair fall from the head of any of you." "Then were they all of good cheer, and they also took some meat." This was pro- bably the only thing like a meal they had taken JFLIUS THE CENTXJEION. 22^ since the besrinnino^ of tlie storm. And after thus refreshing themselves, we find them again usins: the means that seemed best calculated to secure their escape. They lightened the ship by casting the corn into the sea. Nor could it at this time have escaped so intelligent a man as the centurion, to observe how much more confident and composed the apostle was than the rest of the company. He alone could say anything hopeful. He alone could say : " Sirs, be of good cheer: for I believe God, that it shall be even as it was told me." Blessed in- deed is the gift of faith. Blessed is he that believes God! This is happiness. This is a refuge that never fails. Here is the source of true courage. The heart stayed upon God can well afford to be magnanimous cheerful, fear- less. " I fear God, and know 7io other fear," is truly sublime.* 1. The accuracy of PaiiVs ])redwtion is re- marhaUe. The vessel was to be lost, and they were to be cast upon a certain island, yet not a soul on board was to perish. He liimself was * " Je crains Dieu, et n'ai point d'autre crainte." 228 JULIUS TLIE CENTUEIOIT. to be brought before the emperor. It might have seemed probable that they would be wrecked on an island where there were so many, and that a few of the persons would be saved, but who could confidently declare that every one on the ship should escape from a wa- tery grave ? This prediction he could not have made without divine authority. But each and every particular of the prophecy was verified. 2. The conversion of Paul has long been re- garded by Lord Littleton and others as one of the strongest arguments in behalf of Christ- ianity. But if the argument from his conver- sion is so irresistible now, why was it not equally so when the centurion was made a«> quainted with it from the apostle's own lips '^; Surely, the demonstration of the truth of the religion he professed from his own account of his conversion when it was accompanied by prophecies and miracles that proved him to be in communication with God, could not have been weaker than it i3 now. We should think the conviction on such a mind as that of the centurion, under all the circumstances. JULIUS TIIE CEXTUKIOX. 229 must been very strongly in favor of Christ- ianity. 3. Let 11^ observe also in tliis history a re- markable illustration of the philosophical Bible truth, tliat God is sovereign and man is free. The apostle pointedly declares to the centurion : " Except these abide in the ship, ye cannot be saved." Verse 31. By which we understand the apostle at one blow to cut the Gordian knot about sovereignty and free agency. He has declared that the ano-el of God has told him that every soul is to be saved from the violence of the sea, and he " believes God that it shall be even as it was told him ;" yet here he says, the means adapted to prevent our per- ishing must be used : " These must abide in the ship, or ye cannot be saved." The end and the means must always go together. They are •always so in the divine mind. To trust to means is to despise God, and to neglect the use of the means he has appointed is presump- tuous; is wicked; is. to tempt God. It was God's purpose "that all should be saved from death at that time, and in order to this result 230 JULIUS THE CEISTTURIOI^. it was his purpose tliey sliould all remain in the ship. " Almighty God," says the pious Burkitt, " likes not to be tied to means himself, but it is his j^leasure to tie us. Sometimes, to show his sovereignty, he is pleased to work without means ; sometimes, to show his omni- potence, he works against means. The fire shall not burn, the water shall not drown, the iron shall swim, the sun shall stand stilL The First CxVuse can suspend the power of second causes when he pleases. But as the care of the end belongs to God, so the care of the means belongs to us, and must be used when they may, and where they can be used. Ac- cordingly here the mariners, in order to their own and others' preservation, stay in the ship, lighten it, undergird it, cast out their anchors, hoist up the mainsail, loose the rudder-bands, and do everything to their preservation whiclf was needful. Tlie purpose of God to prolong our lives must not lessen our care for tlie pre- servation of our lives : wlien God has ordained and appointed means, we cannot expect to find sa'^ety in the neglect of those means." Human JULIUS THE CENTURION". 231 means are not to be nes-lected because we lave o gracious and sovereign promises, but the rather to be diligently used. The certainty of an event as seen by God does not render it im- proper for us to use the means. The determin- ing of the event comprehends the means requi- site to effect it. And it is our duty to use these means as they are put into our power and according to the divine directions, just as dili- gently as if we could save ourselves, and then to trust in the grace of God as wholly as if we could do nothino; at all. Salvation is of free grace, through the appointed means. 4. AYe have here an illustration of the bene- fits of leing in good comjoany. For Paul's sake the rest of the prisoners were saved from death, either from a watery grave or from a summary execution by the soldiers. One sinner destroy- eth much good. The companion of fools shall l)e destroyed. But ten righteous men would have saved Sodom. For the elect's sake the evil days are shortened. Let young people then remember that human history is full of illustrations of the truth of the fable that 232 JULIUS THE CENTUKIOI^. teaclies tlie danger of Lad company. Tlie les- sons of our streets and of eveiy-day life demon- strate its truth. Common sense as well as tlie Bible warns us to beware of evil doers. 5. If you ask us wlietlier or not Julius, tlie centurion of Paul's voyage and shipwreck, be- came a Cliristian, we answer that our history is altogether silent on the subject. We cannot answer categorically ; but we hope he did. It is seen from our examination of the narration, that he was under the influence of a man full of faith and of the Holy Ghost ; of an apostle who Avas intent, like his great master, not to destroy men's lives, but to save them ; and to save them not only from death temj)oral, but from everlastino; death. And we have seen that there are circumstances in the centurion's connection with the apostle well calculated to convince him that the apostle's religion was dif- ferent from and superior to that of the Jews and Eomans ; that by having direct intercourse with heaven, he was clothed with credentials that asserted the truth of the religion he pro- fessed ; and we have found that as a centurion JULIUS THE CENTUEIO]!?'. 233 of the royal Augustan coliort, lie must liave been a favorite officer, a man of superior merit, probably on account of liis learning, experience and talents; that he was intelligent and well travelled, and possessed of a mind compara- tively free from prejudice and well disciplined. Wliat then is to hinder our belief that he was converted to Christianity? He certainly had every oj)portunity to know the truth. Not only had he been in the Holy Land, and been made somewhat acquainted with the facts of our Lord's life, death, and resurrection, and of Paul's conversion ; for we cannot suppose such a man to have travelled from Rome to Judea at that tune, without having learned more or less about these things; and then he is in daily contact with Paul on the vova2:e, and has an opportunity of hearing him preach for some three montlis that they remained on the island, where probably every day Paul was the chap- lain of the cohort and of his fellow-prisoners and of the crew. The centurion must have known of Paul's miracle, and of his influence among the peoj)le of Melita. ISTor can we be- 234 JULIUS THE CEISTTUEION". lieve that Paul failed to take pains, as far as ^vas becoming in a prisoner, to acquaint him with the character of Christ and the proofs of his Messiahship. And then we must remember that the last mention we hav^e in the sacred narrative of the centurion, like the first, is con- nected with kindness toward the apostle. "Wlien they all reached Eome, cliap. xxviii. 16, the centurion delivered his prisoners to the captain of the guard, and Paul was allowed to dwell by himself with a soldier that kept him. This is recorded as a special favor granted to the apostle, and was doubtless secured for him by the influence of the centurion. And so we have no doubt the unusual liberty and kind- ness shown to Paul, when he was allowed to dwell two years in his own hired house in Kome, and received all that came to him, ]^reaching the kingdom of God, and teaching those things which concern the Lord Jesus Christ, with all confidence, no man forbidding liim ; that all this was obtained for him by the centurion's favorable report of his character and conduct. It is not then, we trust, presum- JULIUS THE CENTUEIOK. 235 ing on liistoiy, to hope tliat, like tlie jailer of Pliilippi, lie inquired what he should do to be saved, and receiving a similar answer, was made a partaker of the great salvation. 6. Deliverances from the perils of a journey hy land or of a sea voyage, and especially from the dangers of a battle or of a shipwreck, call for special thanksgiving, and increased devo- tion to God and the things of eternity. V. We should not allow ourselves to be discourao-ed because we meet with difficulties in the way of duty. Joseph was a favorite with his father and with heaven, yet his early years were crowded with what the world calls bad luck or sad mishaps. Esther is left an orphan in captivity, but her God prepares her for the crown of Persia, and then places it on her head, and brink's her to the kinoxlom to de- liver his church and save his people from their enemies. The Hebrews are in the way of duty, though just after they leave Egypt they are shut in at the Red Sea. Difficulties at the beginning of a journey or of a voyage, or at the opening of a new business, are no 236 JULIUS THE CENTUEION. signs tliat it is not going to turn out prosper- ously. The proverb is, that " a bad beginning has a good end;" and in the sense of meeting with hindrances or obstacles, it may be re- garded as true. The omens of Paul's voyage » were both good and bad. The worst feature about it was the bad company with whom he was to make a long voyage. Many a convict from Great Britain to Botany Bay was compa- ratively innocent at the beginning of the voy- aore to what he was when he arrived at its end. The associations of the voyage were from bad to worse all the way. And so the corruption, the utter loss of shame and of self-respect, has often been completed, and the way to ruin has- tened by confining juvenile offenders with those that were more skilled and hardened in crime. To a man of the education and refinement of Paul, a long vo^^age with such 23risoners and soldiers must have been a severe trial. But it w^as a kind Providence that j)ut such a gentle- man as the Boman officer, Julius, in command of the guard on that ship. Paul had appealed to Bome and Avas to stand before Csesar, think- , JULIUS THE CE^^TURION. 237 ing that, as lie ^vas a Roman citizen, lie could find justice tliere ratlier tlian among Lis own countrymen, or at the court of tlie j)ro-consul at Cesarea ; but Lis voyage was in many respects one of tLe most disao:reeable and dang-erous on record. NevertLeless it was God's will tLat lie sLould testify of Jesus at Eome. It was not tLen because Paul was on board tLat tLere was a storm and tLe vessel was lost. Paul was in tlie way of duty, yet everytLing seemed to be worLino^ ao:ainst liim. TLe Jews laid in Avait for Lim, and wLen lie Lad escaj)ed tLeir Lands, tLen contrary winds and waves are against Lim. TLe malice of Lis enemies, tLe unreasonable prejudice of Lis own countrymen, and tLe wars of tLe elements, are all permitted to work against Lim; yet tLey were all overruled. TLey all worked togetlier for Lis good. And if no adverse circumstances Lad followed tLis voyage, if no Divine interferences, no sliipwreck and no miracles, tLen tLere Lad been no cLurcL at Malta. "TLe Lord liatli indeed prepared Ins tlirone in tLe Leavens, and Lis kingdom ruletli over all." " He maketL tLe wratli of 238 JULIUS THE CEI^^^TUJJION. man to praise liim, and the remainder lie re- strainetL" God can make all occurrences and events promote the welfare of his holy Church. Why then should we not leave the government of the world in his hands, and trust most lov- ingly to his gracious promises ? Plitherto he hath done all things well. And his wisdom, power, and goodness are as ample for the fu- ture as they were for the past. The absolute .assurance, however, of God's promises is never to be construed into a neglect of the aj)pointed means. It is God's plan to work by miracles when ordinary means are used to the utmost. " The gods help those who help themselves." The Divine promise is, that God's presence shall always go with his servants. The Lord God is a sun and a shield ; he will give grace and glory, and no good thing will he withhold from them that walk uprightly. He can raise up friends for them in the darkest hours, and from the most unexpected sources. "When he allows them to be sent to prison, he will send his angel with them, and give them a keeper such as he sees it is best for them to have, and JULIUS THE centueio:n". 239 give them favor in tlie siglit of their keepers. And if, as in this case, saints and sinners are mixed together, crowded up on l)oard the same ship, still God knows his people and w^ill make a great difference between them and those that serve him not. The special, gracious j)resence of God is a sufficient and sure supjiort for his people under all the trials of life. It was no doubt a great comfort to the apostle, that he had such companions as Timothy and Aristarchus for the whole, or even a part of this voyage, and that he was permitted to land at Sidon and see the brethren there, and re- ceive refreshments and supplies from them for his tedious voyage ; and that at Puteoli, hav- ing escaped the perils of the wreck, he should find brethren who entertained him seven days, and thence on his voyage to Rome, till he met other brethren who came to meet him " as far as Appii Forum and the Three Taverns, whom when Paul saw, he thanked God, and took courage." And after his arrival in the imperial city, his greatest joy was to WTite to the churches and to preach Jesus and 240 JULIUS THE CEXTURIOK the resurrection, and salvation tlirougli liim, Ibotli to Jews and Gentiles. But how blessed; how much more triumphant his departure to the New Jerusalem, which is above, the eternal city of God ! Then he finished his course with joy, and put on his crown of glory and immor- tality. " Dear Jesus grant when our work is done, When the battle 's 'fought, the race is run, We may hear thy voice calling us home, Across the Kiver. " And though its waves may be dark and cold, May our hope be bright, our faith be bold, 'Till we are gathered safely in thy fold Across the River." — Mrs. C. D. S. in the " Pacific Expositor:* XL THE CHOICE OF A CALLIlS-a OR PROFESSIOlSr.* Lord, what wilt thou have me to do ? — Acts ix. 6. The tliree grand essentials to our chief end, whidi is happiness in this life and in the world to come, or as the catechism more definitely and forcibly expresses it, " to glorify God and enjoy him forever," are something to do, some- thing to love, and something to hope for. And in finding this something to do, to love and to hope for, and in this doing, loving and hoping, is the battle of life. And a great battle it is. To be born into life is a victory, and to die is a battle, but whether unto victory or defeat depends uj)on the manner of our life. All the * This is taken from a discourse entitled : *' Some thoughts on the principles which should guide a young man in the choice of a calling or pi'ofession, delivered in Calvary Church, San Francisco, Sabbath evening, 14th April, 1861, as the fifth of the series before the Young Men's Christian Association. By Rev. Dr. Scott." 11 241 242 THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIOTT. way, however, from tli^ cradle and our first campaign into the world, to the coffin and our last campaign, when we leave the field, it is all a battle. Nor can it Le otherwise. 'Nov is it desirable it should be otherwise. Nor is it wise or manly to dej^lore that it is so. Life is a battle, a stern battle, that must be fought, and fought all the way up hill and against an enemy's batteries. But w^ere it not so, where were the glory of success? If there was nothing to struggle against, where were the honor of winning ? Opposition stimu- lates courage ; difficulties enhance the glory of success, until, as the poet says, " Danger's self is lure alone." It is only the coward who sinks into the dust because a lion is found in the path, or a mountain avalanche has fallen across the road. A close view, if his eye is fixed only on going ahead in the right way, will show him that the lion is chained, or that there is a way over the mountain. There is no lion in the way of duty that does not quail before an honest eye and a bold heart. It is not only true, as General Jackson said, that " true cour- THE CHOICE OF A TEOFESSIOT^. 243 age makes one a majority," but it is true tlie brave " never surrender." They never die. The flames may turn their goods to ashes or con- sume their dwellings. The Avaves may swal- low up their ships. Thieves may rob their safes and carry off their gold ; but the truly l>rave are never conquered. When they fall it is to live again. Their principles live. Their example is imperishable. The Sage of Marsh- iield, in his own dying words, still lives. Even on earth they generally win more than they lose. The highest and purest happiness is found in a firm adherence to principle and a faithful discharge of duty. Having ascertained our duty, then, we must perform it. It is more than life. We must conscientiously and scru- pulously live up to our principles, if we would be happy. The consequences of doing our duty l^elong to God. An analysis of the text gives us three points that may help us to ojDcn up our theme, which is some thoughts ot^ the PRINCIPLES which should GUIDE A YOUNG MAN IN CHOOSING AN EMPL0Y3IENT OR CALLING FOR LIFE. 24:4 THE CHOICE OF A PKOFESSION". First. The text shows tliat God's jDower is absolute over all creatures and agencies, and that it is sometimes displayed Avitli tlie design of saving, when, to our view, it w^ould seem that his purpose was to destroy. Saul was struck down, not to die, but to be raised up again a new man, that he might become Paul the apostle of the Gentiles. Second. We have here the sincere prayer and earnest cry of a truly converted man, Lord^ what wilt tliou have me to do f It is not what shall my neighbor do ; but what wilt thou have me to do ? It is not what wilt thou have me to say^ but what wilt thou have me to do ? It is not the man of profes- sions merely, th^ talker and maker of fair promises that is the Christian; but he that doeth the will of God. The true inquiry of every renewed heart is to know the mind and will of God, and then to conform to it — to know his duty and do it. We may as well look to find matter without form or gravitation, or fire without heat, as to find a man converted to God without operative grace. THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSION. 245 Tldrd. We see that God is pleased to give an answer to tlie serious inquiry : "What wilt thou liave me to do T Arise, said the Lord, cmd go info the city, and it slicdl he told thee ^oliat tliou must do. Before he was going into the city to do the devil's bloodiest work — to persecute the followers of Christ unto death. JN'ow God tells him to go into the same city for a very different j)urpose. His authority, before, was from the high priests, and his tra- vellino; escritoire w^as full of commissions srivino; power to destroy; now his authority is from heaven, and to be instructed unto salvation for himself and for others. And althouo-h Paul's conversion and call to the ministry and a230stle- ship are miraculous, yet his case suggests that it is a proper inquiry for every one to make : " Lord, what wilt thou have me to do V 1. It is ol^vious that our choice of a pursuit, employment, calling, profession or the kind of business we are to follow by which to make a living, and in which to serve our generation, our country and our God, slioidd he determined by j^rinciple, arul not merely from chance or the 246 THE CHOICE or a professio]^. wJiims of a moment. It requires no argument to prove tliat young men, as free agents and rational, intelligent beings, should be governed by liigli coiTect principles in their choice of a profession for life. It is nevertheless true, that apparently trivial occurrences have exercised a controlling influence over the whole course of the lives of distino-uished men. Sir "Walter Scott's lameness probably had a great deal to do in shaping his habits, and enabling him to write the border tales and historic novels that have made him immortal in the English tongue. Washington's love for his mother kept him from being a sailor, and prepared him to be- come the leader of the American armies and the Father of his country. Joseph's many colored coat excited the envy of his brethren, who threw him into a j)it till the Ishmaelites came along, and then sold him into Egypt, and the removal of Jacob and the bondage all fol- lowed. Who could have anticipated such re- sults from Joseph's coat the bright morning he left Hebron to seek for his brethren who kej^t their flocks near Shechem ? or who could have THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSION. 247 predicted that Moses' blow on an Egyptian's head as he was striving with a Hebrew in the iiekl, woukl lead to his exile and his forty years' education in the wilderness around Mount Sinai, that was to qualify him for the great business of his life — the leading of the He])rews out of Egypt and through that same wilderness to the borders of the promised land? But the occurrences or events that exerted a controllino" influence over their whole subse- cpient life were small only in aj^pearance. They ivere in reality great events — great because they were essential parts of " the stupendous ^\'hole " in the hands of an all- wise and Al- mighty Providence. They were the spring heads of a mighty stream. Although it is a part of the plan or economy of the Supreme Providence to produce great results from small beginnings, it is not true that there is any chance in the divine economy. All things are governed by laws. Eternal j)i*inciples lie at the beorinnnioc of every man's course in life as well as in the production of the universe. The first thing, then, to be known in regard 248 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION. to the choice of a business for life is, tliat it is according; to the will of God. This is essen- tial. For his will is the supreme law — tlie only infallible rule of right and wrong. No matter, therefore, how great the inducements held out to do this, or eno^acre in that or the other business, if it involves a sin against God, or requires the violation of any of his command- ments, you must not choose it. How can you sin against God, and do that great wickedness in his sight? How, then, are you to know what is according to his will I There are va- rious methods by which w^e may find out what is agreeable to the will of God, but the main thing for a young man in choosing a business or profession, is to have a satisfactory answer in his own conscience - to the question : " Lord, what wilt Thou have me to do ?" Gifts and opportunities are to be considered, but the main question is transferred from time to eter- nity, from earth to heaven, and, as it Avere, from our own bosom to the mind of our Maker. What pursuit in life is it the will of God, wlio has made me, who is daily to supjport me, and THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSION". 249 who is to be my final Judge, that I should choose? This is the first and main question. And in seeking an answer, the first thing is to obey God in reference to our personal salva- tion. If any man will do the will of God, he shall know of the doctrine whether it be of God or not. What, then, is God's will ? Our Lord says: He that liearetli my word and he- lieveth on him that sent me, hath everlasting life, and shall not come into condemnation ; but is passed from death unto life. And when the Jews asked him, saying: What shall we do, that we might work the works of God ? Jesus answered and said unto them, This is the work of God, that ye believe on him whom he hath sent. John v. 6. And a2:ain, we know that it is the commandment of God, that we should believe upon his only begotten Son Jesus Christ. Accordingly the disciples were sent to preach everywhere repentance toward God and faitli in Christ. The first duty of every one, therefore, is to believe the testimony God has given of his Son Jesus Christ, and to accept of him as he is oifered in the Gospel as our pro 11* 250 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOjSr. j)]iet, priest and king. Until we are reconciled to God tlirouo"li tlie blood of Jesus Clirlst as our passover sacrificed for our sins, and feel our isrnorance and need of divine illumination and guidance, Ave are not prepared to appreliend fully tlie momentous question of life : Lord^ vjliat luilt tliou liave me to do ? It is then our duty first to seek the kingdom of God and his righteousness. It is first both in point and in importance. But how may a young man know w^hat the will of God is ? Are we to rely ujDon dreams, or visions, or to expect voices from heaven, or are miracles to designate the busi- ness we are to follow? By no means. The age of such miracles is past. But there are considerations which, when j^roperly and prayer- fully apj)rehended, will enable a young man to know what his pursuit in life should be, quite as satisfactorily as if miracles were wrought. For example, when he is debating in his mind whether he shall engage in this business, or choose this or that profession, let him ask him- self: Is the lousiness or profession which he is about to choose, the one that is the most promi- THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOl^T. 251 neiit ill liis mhid, wlieu lie is nearest to God — when lie is the most humble before God and has the most exalted views of the divine character, and the profonndest reverence for the revealed will of God ? Has the calling or profession he is about to choose the strongest hold upon his mind, when he fixes his eye most steadily upon death and the judgment seat ? Is it the business he would prefer to be engaged in when death shall overtake him ? Will it heiiY the light of eternity, and the scrutiny of the Judge of cpaick and dead ? And, secondly^ let every young man be careful that the busi- ness he selects has the approbation of his own conscience. The whole human heart is exceed- ingly deceitful ; but the conscience is the most delicate, susceptible, sensitive organ of the liuman soul. It is so delicate, and so important is the moral faculty within us, that I would fain have you protect it -from any abuse and from every violence. So wondrous is the moral economy under which we live, that he who cannot resist temptation is wanting in the first attribute of humanity. The very-first yielding 252 THE CHOICE or a peofessio::^. to temptation debases ug. Every unrighteous deed does the actor ten thousand fold more harm than it inflicts upon the sufferer. The false man is more false to himself than to any one else. So that it is literally better to be sinned aD:ainst than to sin ourselves. Better suffer ten thousand wi'onsrs than to commit one wrong in tiying to avenge ourselves. The fire of a guilty passion may scorch and wither others, but it burns the hottest at the centre/ which is the sinner's OAvn heart. And if this relation ceased at death it were not so terrible ; but death only makes it worse by increasing the intensity of the woe, and adding eternity to it. Every time a man does a Avrong thing, he subtracts so much from the delicacy and energy of his moral nature. And as our medical men tell us that all suffering and all violence done to our physical system, before birth, impairs our constitution, and sends us into the world shorn of much of the energy, or blunted in the fineness of the perceptions we should other- wise have possessed : so every violation of con- science in thi^ life sends us forward into eter THE CHOICE OF A PE0FE3SI0:N'. 253 nity maimed and crippled, and incapal3le of the hiofliest ilio'lits of bliss wliicli we mio;lit Lave readied by maintaining our moral nature more perfect. "Every instance of violated conscience, like every broken string in a liarp, will limit tlie compass of its music and mar its harmonies forever." It is of the utmost consequence, then, that you preserve a good conscience. It is your most important faculty. And yet it is exceed- ingly difficult to keep it from being led astray through ignorance, or by prejudice or passion. So tender and susceptible is it of impressions, that it has been educated to "sanction somewhere or other every sin and crime that fills the pages of human guilt. It is impossible, therefore, to overstate the necessity of having a good con- science ; a conscience enlightened by the word and spirit of God. For, unless our moral na- ture respond to our intellectual, our bosom is the seat of terrible war. There must be peace at home. The conscience must be satisfied with the choice of the profession we make, or we shall want moral courage for its prosecution. To undertake the pursuit of a business that 254 THE CHOICE OF A PF.OFESSIO^. our own lieart is all the time telling lis is wrong, is like a general marching an army into an ene- my's country and leaving the fortresses and forces of his enemy unconquered in his rear. Tliey will of course annoy him, cut off his sup- plies, and finally destroy him, unless he is able to turn upon them and crush them. But it is not every conscience that is a safe guide. An hour aixo Saul of Tarsus had as cle^r a con- science that he was right when going to Da- mascus to persecute men and women unto death for being the followers of Jesus, as when he vrent to CsBsar's bloch to be beheaded for his faith in Jesus as the Son of God. The Jews did not know that Jesus was the Son of God and the Lord of glory when they crucified him. They put him to death with a good conscience, thinking they were serving God and their country ; yet they did it with wicked hands. They committed an awful crime, though uncon- scious of it at the time. While, therefore, the conscience is not always to be trusted — for there is a blind conscience, an ignorant, unen- lio"htened conscience — it becomes, every one to THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIO^T. 255 try Ills conscience by prayer and by the Word of God, and be sure to have its approbation at tlie moment that he feels the eye of God beaming most fully uj^on him. And again — Thirdly. Let a young man, in choosing his pursuit for life, examine carefully whether the business he is setting his heart upon inspires him with a strength of loill to execute all the plans which are necessary to carry it out. It is folly to choose any calling that we have not courage to follow. So tremendous is the power of the will as an administrator of human affairs, that under God, and next to God, it is omnipo- tent. In debating in your own mind, then, whether or not you should choose this profes- sion or tliat calling, strive to ascertain which one it is that inspires your soul Vvdth the great- est strength, and girds you up the most for dif- ficulties and for victory. In relation to which pursuit of life do you feel that success is in you ? As you look at its difficulties and dan- gers, and greatness, do you feel within yourself, God helping, that you have the elements of success within you ? 256 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION". One of oiir countiymen long devoted to our educational institutions, in describing tlie men we want in our day, said : " We want no men wlio will change like tlie vanes on our steeples, with the course of the popular wind ; but we want men who, like mountains, will change the course of the winds." These are just the men wanted now: oneii ivlio^ like moimtains of gra- nite^ ID ill cluing e tlie -course of tlie ivincls. Men who are not at all distressed about the hosan- nah of the crowd ; men who lea.ve popularity for dolls, and remember, with an ancient, that the path of the gods is steep and craggy ; men who are willing sometimes to go to Coventry, and let the populace howl on their coldest con- tempt ; men who j)refer the right to the great- est temporal advantage or honor ; who can con- test the frowns of fortune, and make good their course over the roughest seas. The ancients thouf>-ht a virtuous man bearinor misfortunes a far nobler sight than to see him basking in the sunshine. It is pleasant to see a clipper come flying into our glorious Gate with sails all set and colors flying ; and yet, more heroic feelings THE CHOICE or A PROEESSIOTT. 257 are stirred witliiii us wlien we see a noble ves- sel tl^at lias battled witli winds and waves for six montlis, still making good lier liarbor, tliouo-li some of lier sails are torn and some of lier masts shivered, and every timber in lier has been tried by the tempest. It is impossible to overestimate the import- ance of a rigid adherence to right principles where public sentiment is so fickle and yet so potential as with us. Public sentiment — the embodied opinions of the public — is like the atmosphere. It is sweet and fresh, pure and gentle, or hot and feverish, just as the breath that is breathed into it is hot or fresh. When it comes from the marsh or the fever-guarded district, it is sickly ; but if from the lovely vale or tlie pure mountain heights, it is healthful. But when the hot sands and sulphurous blasts of the desert gather into the moving mass, then their course is marked with desolation. The particles of air and grains of sand are in them- selves small and feeble. It is their aggregation *tliat makes them powerful. It is the poison they gather in coming over the infected district, 258 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION. and tlie momentum tliey acquire in tlieir j^ro- gress, that make them so pernicious. Aijd it is just so with public opinion. One man's call- ing, plans, thoughts and preferences by them- selves may be so insignificant as to have but little iniluence; but when joined with those of his neighbors, they assume a shape and a weight that make them influential. There is then an individual responsibility resting on every one for his part of public sentiment. As threads make the web, so do individual opin- ions form pu1)lic opinion. And when, as is sometimes the case, public opinion is wrong, then it is we are to show our attachment to our country and our adherence to jmnciple, by maintaining the right, regardless of the fury of the storm. A time-serving trimmer deserves nothing but contempt. Let us know Avhat a man really is, and then, even if we differ from ]]hn, still we respect his honesty and courage. We know where he is, and that he stands by his principles and is true to his flag; that he will not sail under false colors. But • one says, it is of no use, l)ecause I cannot realize THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIO]^. 259 what I wisli. The 2:)ublic are against luc. I oaiinot resist the tempest. Now it may not be given ordinarily to one man, nor to any one age, or class of men, to monlcl public opinion all at once. It is usually the growth of many days, and the product of many minds ; but still, an individual responsibility rests on every one for his part of it. IS^or is it given to any one to know how great the effect may be of a single utterance of the right word, or of a good exam- 2^1e, or of the lifting up of the right banner at the critical moment. The Kev. Dr. Wayland, of Uliode Island, holds some views that we cannot receive, yet we respect his character, and commend the following explanation of his suc- cess as an author, a teacher, and as a minister. It is reported that when asked how he had ])een able to do so much, and to live so long and so. happily in the same community, he re- plied : " Whatever success I may have had in life, is owing simply to my holding on and sticking to my appropriate work." Yes, young gentlemen, this is just it. Hold on and ham- mer on, and look up, and never yield to difficul 260 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION. ties. Never think of giving up and lying clo^vn in despair. You may not be responsible for the storm ; but you are responsible liow you bear it — for holding to right principle — and so far at least, it is your duty to make a stand aorainst the flood. There is nothino: more sub- lime than honesty. Be sure, then, to ascertain what true principles are ; and then hold on to them, come what may. In all your business transactions, whatever profession or calling you choose, let justice be your pole-star. The pro- verb, "Let justice be done, though the heavens fall," seems to imply a fallacy. For the more justice is done, the more the heavens will not fall. It is impossible for the heavens to fall, if justice is done. It is only by wrong doing the pillars of the skies can be shaken down. If then already,* or even at the threshhold of life, you should find that you have made a mistake and chosen a calling that is not morally right, then you should leave it as quickly as you would leap from a vat of boiling brimstone, if you should fall into one, and be left with ])ower to exert yourself to get out. If a barber THE CHOICE OF A PllOFESSIOX. 261 should batter liis razor s edge on a flint stone as a 2:)reparation for shaving, you would not l)e likely to trust yourself his hands. Why then Avill you risk wearing off or gaping or dulling your conscience by daily putting it into con- tact with known error, or moral wrong doing ? 2. In the second place, allow me to s^, some regard should be had to your specicd quaUfica- t ions for the pursuit in life ivliicli you are to follow. The gifts w^hich God bestows upon his creatures are indications of their sjihere of existence. The lins and breathing api^aratus of fish are adapted to the sea ; and so the wings and shape of birds indicate that their home is in the air. And the human form and constitu- tion cleoi'ly point out our adaptedness to the world in which we live ; into which we have l^een born and out of wdiich we are to die, Avhen our course is finished. But we have a more specific adaptation than what is here indicated. God in all ages has endowed some men with special qualifi (nations for certain pursuits. A careful stud} of history shows that all the ages of man- kind are united as links in a chain ; that all 262 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOIT. generations of men, like the geological dynas- ties and periods of the planet, are connected to- gether, and exert an influence upon and are preparatory to all that follow. Past genera- tions lap over upon us, just as we will do upon the one that follows, and through it upon all that shtill follow to the end of time. And so also different nations and races act upon one another, and each ao-e of the world and each nation has had, and still has its peculiar, dis- tinctive mission in the world to fulfil. And for its mission, providence allotted to it the proper gifts and opportunities. But again, this is true of individuals as well as of ages and na- tions. Cain was the first builder of cities, and from him we have our word civilization. Jabal was the leading agriculturist of h*s age, being " the father of such as dwell in tents and have cattle," and ' his statue should therefore crown the entrance to our cattle-shows and agricultu- ral fairs. And Jubal, his brother, was "the father of all such as handle the harp and the organ ;" and his statue should therefore prevail over all the images of gods and goddesses of THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSION. 2 03 tlie lieathen in oiir concert lialls. And Tubal- Cain, the Vulcan of the Old Testament, should preside ovei* tlie blacksmith and the whitesmith, and the goldsmith and the mechanic's hall, for he was the father of all the mechanics, " the in- structor of every artificer in brass and iron." We are authorized also, by the word of God, to say that gifts and talents of men, by which they are adapted to the various employments of life, are imparted to them by the Creator. " There is a spirit in man ; and the inspiration of the Almighty givetli him nnderstanding." The classic page as well as the inspired wiiters tell us that Grod has taug:ht man how to sow the wheat, thresh out the corn, and to get riches, and to fell the trees, and even how to iiixht. It w^as God that gave Moses administrative power, and to Aaron the gift of eloquence. Othniel, Samson, Gideon, and Daniel were raised up to be warriors ; and so were Alexan- der the Great, Wellington, Napoleon, Have- lock, and Jackson. And Cyrus was the Lord's anointed for the special j^urpose of delivering his church out of Babylon. ''And the Lord 264 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOIS'. spake unto Moses, saying, See, I have called by name Bezaleel the son of Uri, the son of Hur, of the tribe of Jnclah : and I have filled him with the sj^irit of God, in wisdom and in nn- derstanding, and in knowledge, and in all manner of workmanshij:) : and I, behold 1 have given him Aholiab, the son of Ahisha- mach, of the tribe of Dan; and in the hearts of all that are wise-liearted I have put wisdom, that they make all that I have com- manded thee." And so of statesmen, artists, orators and j)hilosophers, they were specially blessed with the gifts or endowments that were fitted for the positions or works in life which they accomplished. Let every young man, therefore, carefully examine and see whether his mental and moral endowments fit him for the business he is about to choose, or whether, at least, he feels within himself that he has the capacity and the energy that will enable him to prej^are himself for it. It is said in the Life of the late Moses Stuart, one of the best men and best scholars of our country and of our age, that the trustees of Andover elected him to a THE CHOICE OF A PKOFEfSIOI^. 265 professorship, not becaaso lie was prepared, but ])ecaiise tliey were satisfied it was in him, and that he would thoroughly prepare himself for it. And nobly did he justify their confidence. Be sure, then, that you are fitted for the place, rather that it is merely for you. 3. In the third place, young men should con- sider it as a great principle to follow in choos ing their occupation, that it is one ly wliicli tliey may Iwpe to he useful^ to do good in the world. Having determined that all men are not equally fitted for all pursuits, but that some are better qualified for one employment, and others for another, it is plainly the will of God that labor should be divided, and that the arts and pur- suits of life should be so multi2:)lied and meted out, that all should have somethino: to do. The rule by which callings are graduated is not a I'ule to determine which are the hio^hest or the lowest. It has reference only to two things, namely : that the calling is a righteous or law- ful one in the sight of God, and that we have gifts from God for its prosecution. True honor lies in the manner of fillins; such a callino;. No 12 266 THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIOlSr. matter wliat it is, if it is one tliat God approves of and has called iis to ; then, if we fill it well, it is honorable. One of our old divines has said, that if God were to commission two an- gels, the one to rule an empire and the other to sweep the streets of a city, both would proceed to their woi^v with equal alacrity. As preju- dice may exist in some minds simply from the want of clearly apprehending the distinction and relation that must exist between the difi*er- ent callings and emj)loyments of men, we have here a few words to say concerning them. A?i, and the If'me Aits, and Mamffacturingy are terms in everybody's mouth, and yet but few seem to see how they are united in concord. The lowest or simplest idea of manufacturing is suggested by the etymology of the word, which is from the Latin^ and means " the mak- ing of anything by the hands;" that is^ with- out the help of instruments or machines. And yet our manufactured wares and goods are almost all made in whole or in part by ma- chinery. The literal signification is,, therefore, so limited that it properly applies to but few THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSION. 267 tiling's. For we liiis'e Lut few articles that Lave proceeded from the human hand onty, acting mechanically ; l)ut the moment a directing in- tellio^ence is seen in the workino^ of the hand, then we liave AjL Hence we find in the books and in constant use the phrases, " the art of ship-building;" " an art in making tools, wag ons and ploughs," and the like. And one step more, and we have the Fine Arts, namely, the jDursuits of man in which his hand and his head and his heart are all workino* tos^ether. The hand is at the bottom and it is at the top of everything. Without manufacturing nothing is done ; and without intelligence to direct the hand, nothing is done ; and without taste, an enlightened heart, with the directing mind, there is no Fine Art. And as this triple group is combined to a greater or less degree in all our pursuits and enjoyments, and thus the whole man is consulted and honored, so it is with all the proper pursuits of mankind. They are all honorable and they are all united. The farmer has need of the merchant and banker, medical man and mechanic, and all these depend ujDon 268 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION. tlie farmer for their bread. The universal law is, I have need of you, and you have need of me. But still the question is not answered : Is the young man to be a farmer, a mechanic, a merchant, a physician, a teacher, a la^^^^er, a sailor, a soldier, or a minister of the Gospel ? All these emj)loyments and the multitudinous branches or modifications of them, that are too tedious to be enumerated, are lawful and mo- rally right in the sight of God. The cultiva- tion of the earth is, of course, the oldest pur- suit of man, and its importance is obvious. All other professions and pursuits depend ujDon agriculture. The temporal wants of the world must be supplied. And here we notice a poj)u- lar fallacy which has long occupied the minds of our countrymen. They have been disputing which was the greatest, " King Commerce," "King Gold," "King Cotton," or "King La- bor," whereas, in fact, the true and mightiest king is Bread. And while there are millions of mouths to be fed, and millions of acres that want hands to till them, it is clearly the will THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION-. 269 of lieaven that millions of our race should find the pursuit in which they are to do the most good by toiling in the field. And of median- iced industry y we may say it is essentially con- nected with agriculture, because it lives upon the produce of the ground, and it gives the farmer his house and barns, mill and impale- ments, and then it builds ships which the mer- chant emplo3^s in carrying the products of the dinner's lands from one country to another. And thus the farmer, mechanic and merchant are component parts of human society mutually or reciprocally dependent upon each other, and the banker is but another member of the same firm, and Providence indicates by gifts and resources wdiich branches of this business each one is to pursue. The medical profession is ancient and honorable. The great Eedeemer was a healer of the bodies of men as well as the Saviour of their souls. It is manifestly our duty to take care of the body. For sound health, and a body perfect in all its members, is necessary as an instrument for serving our fellow men. But few consider how much so- 2Y0 THE CHOICE OF A PE0FESSI0I5". ciety owes to tlie medical profession. But few consider how mucli suffering they save us from, and how many lives they prolong and how much usefulness and happiness they pro- duce in the world. The world is ungrate- ful to medical men. In learning, talents, dili- gence, science, self-denial, toil and usefulness, it is difficult to take too high a view of the professors of the healing art. But perhaps stronger prejudices exist against the legal pro- fession than against the medical. But where- fore \ It is not sinful, jper se. It is impossi- ble to think so, or to maintain any such an opinion. For God himself is a lawgiver and judge and a law executioner by his laws, which he has made to pervade everything. Does not the legal profession expound the principles of truth, and teach us what equity and justice are, and vindicate the rights and redress the wrongs of society ? The history of the legal profession shows that hunlan learning, science and liberty and civilization and of Christianity owe a great debt to its members. The profession of the law is indeed a noble one. Its true object is to pro- TIIE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOI?-. 271 mote wliat is just, equitable and right. Statute and civil laAv embrace a large portion of human liistory, and the common law has its deep foundation in man's moral nature, and regu- lates his whole ethical economy. If it is not always administered by able and time men, it is not for the want of a training, discipline and excitement that should produce such. And as a body, we believe, legal men are men of high principles, and the conservators of human rights and of eloquence and sound learning. But, perhaps, the work of the teacher is more im- portant stilL In all the other pursuits of men, the work is done with the materials furnished. In all other departments of human labor, even the office of the pulpit, the influence exerted is upon and through agencies that have ])een already developed, either physical, scientific, military, philosophical, political or literary; but it is the teacher's office to form the mind and the character — to prepare the instruments by which all the other pursuits of life are to be carried on. Thus it is the law of heaven that man's work should be associative. One man 2T2 THE CHOICE of a profession can neitlier build a navy nor carve a wliole cathedral himself; but he 'can do his part, and when others do their part, and the results are associated, the work is done. And thus, also, the promotion of our own individual welfare is not only lawful, but a duty, when it does not interfere with our higher duties to God and- our fellow-men. The true aim of all personal improvement should be the gloiy of God and the happiness of liis creatures. For whatever is truly great in humanity is the expression of man's delight in God's work. It does not fol- low because a man is forced to meclianical labor for his bread, or to wear away his life in ceiled chambers behind a desk, or to dig his life out of dusty furrows, that he is cut off from the teachings of liis Maker. But if a man allow his profession or occupation to lead him away from the Great Teacher, and blind his eyes to the splendor of his works, and Innd up his life- blood from its beating responsively to the calls of his omnipotent love, then indeed he is blind and helpless and miseral)le. But it is not wrong — rather it is a man's duty to support his THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIOI^. 273 family, or to help liis parents in old age, or to win a Inicle, or to endow a college by making money; but when at his work, or engaged in his profession, he should love, and love every touch and every blow and every step that it requires to make it square work, perfect work, finished work, such as the great Grand Master M'ill accept. It is only when a man has an en- thusiastic love for his calling, that the spirit is upon him, prompting him to its highest attain- ments. A love for one's callini^ is essential to success and happiness. Fame and money and position are proper objects to aim at in a sub- ordinate decrree. But the love of these thinc^s must never be the first motive in the choice of a profession. Mr. Kuskin, in one of his lectures on Ai't, lays down the rule for his pupils in this way: "Does your art lead you, or your gain lead you ? You may like making money exceedingly ; hut if it come to a fair question ^vhether you ^re to make five hundred pounds less by this business or to spoil your building, and you choose to spoil your work, there's an end of you. So you may be as thirsty for fame 12* 274 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOIS". as a cricket is for cream ; but if it come to a fair question, whether yon are to please the mob, or do the thing as yon know it ought to be done, and you can't do both, and choose to please' the mob, it's all over with you ; there's no hope for you ; nothing that you can do will ever be worth a man's glance as he passes by. The test is absolute, inevitable — Is your art first with you V * It is essential, moreover, to this depth of feel- ing in one's profession, that it should be viewed in its relations to the works and laws of God as the Creator and governor of the universe, and that the mind should not be allowed to dwell on petty and mean cares. Things are very much as we conceive of them as to their eifect upon us. Whatever business, therefore, you are to follow, do not let its little chagrins and disagreeable points fill your head. The constancy of small emotions Avill make your mind and heart little, if not mean. Strive to overcome all littleness, all jealousy and preju- dice. Never mind what others think or say of * Lecture on the Influence of the Imagination. THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOl^. 2^5 your calling, if yon feel witliin yourself that it is right according to the will and providence of God. Keep your eyes and ears open, and your hands employed, and your mind quiet, peaceful, stayed upon God, so that 3^ou may forget your- self, and live out of yourself in your work, and in the calm and beauty, or grandeur and mighti- ness of God's great and lovely world. If there is grandeur in your own soul, you will see it outside of yourself, and find it in others also. Miracles only come to those who believe in miracles. The proverb says : " If you meet with no gods, it is because you harbor none." It is then the law of God that man should labor, and labor under constraint of law. It is an error to say that we are born free, and that the fewer laws we are bound by, the fewer penalties we shall have to endure. This never w^as true. The laws of God are barriers to keep us from rushing over the precipice. It is only the lower animals that are comparatively ex- empt from laws. " JSTo human being, however great or powerful, Avas ever so free as a fish. There is always something he must, or must 276 THE CHOICE OF A PE0FE3SI0X. not do ; wliile the iisli may do whatever lie likes." Indeed, it is in man's moral restraint rather than in his liberty, that we see the gran- deur of his . nature. If the buttei^y is more beautiful and free than the bee, still the bee is the more honorable, because it is the subject of laws. And so it is throughout the universe. It is a compend, a code of laws, and - the re- straint of laws distinguish the higher and more noble creatures and things from those that are inferior. The archangel and the insect; the orbits and the oscillations of the heavenly bo- dies and the mote in the sunbeam ; the power and glory of all things and creatures are in theii^ obedience to law. The king of day has no liberty, but a d^ad leaf on the hill-side has much. The three talismanic words of na- tional existence are laboe, law, and coueage ; or the plough, the restraint of laws, and the sword ; so are they also the elements of indivi- dual strength and happiness. But as no true and lasting j)eace has ever been won by subter- fuge, so there is no peace for you but that which you shall win over self, shame and sin. THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIO^^. 277 It is altogetlier a mistake to talk of victory as a chance. There is no chance and no Wanlsis in your history. All you have to secure is your own verdict for right doing, and you have your cause. Every work well done is a victoiy. And as gaslight is the best city police by nio:ht, so God has ordained laws for the uni- verse, by which to protect it ; for by these laws he brings to light and to a pitiless publicity, sooner or later, all wrono- doinsr. The wao-es of sin is death. Darkness is the true friend of no man. For all sin, like murder, will out. And, moreover, by the very same laws, God has guaranteed that to the powers of sanctified in- tellect all recesses shall be opened, and all secrets revealed. Eternal sunshine glows around it. To it there is no height inaccessible, no depth that cannot be fathomed, no distance it cannot traverse. For all created thino's are governed 1)y laws, and as far as we understand them so far the Creator invests us with his own attributes. It is by a knowledge of God's laws that we approach his attributes when we speak with the flaming tongue of lightning across a 278 THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIOIS^ continent, or navigate our way tlirougli clouds and thick darkness, and contrary winds, to a desired port on tlie other side of the globe. Be assured then, young gentlemen, the condi- tions of life and death in yourself are the con- ditions of life and death in the nation of which you are a part. What is true here is true eve- ry^diere. Essentially the whole world and all its ages and races are alike. Do not deceive yourselves then with the idea that you may be advancing in unconscious ways to God and to- ward success. Do not go about to find an oracle or soothsayer to predict what you may become. You have it, each one of you has it in his power, at this very instant, to determine in what direction he will turn his steps, and what he will become, God helping him. Ac- tions of resolute virtue are within the reach of every one of you. Honesty of purpose, single- ness of mind, and steadfast devotion to a lawful patriotic business are within your reach, and challenire the admiration of mankind. And the best way of gaining strength of mind and ele- vation of purpose is to dwell long and fondly THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSION. 279 on, and ponder seriously on most worthy ex- amples. As the prophet, by steadily gazing on the way by which his prece23tor ascended to heaven, obtained his mantle, and a double por- tion of his spirit. The Gospel MixiSTPtY is a profession of vaster sco]3e and greater importance than any other. It must be so unless it is a gross imposture. If Christianity is what it claims to be, and the ministry of the word of reconciliation is a divine institution, then the preaching of the Gospel is the greatest work that can be com- mitted to man. It is not necessary now to prove the divine origin of our holy religion, nor to show that God has a Church in the world havino: sacraments and ordinances, and an order of men called to preside in it, and administer its sacraments and expound the divine word to the people, showing them the w^ay of salvation. The Apostle Paul has briefly stated the argu- ment. The word is nio:h thee ; even the word of faith which we preach, namely, that if thou shalt confess with thy mouth the Lord Jesus, and shalt believe in tliine heart that God hath 2^0 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOT?". raised liiin from tlie dead, tliou slialt be saved. For witli the lieart, man belie vetli unto right- eousness; and with the mouth confession is made unto salvation. For the Scripture saith, Wnosoever believeth on him shall be saved. How then shall they call on him in whom they have not believed ? And how shall they believe in him of whom they have not heard ? And how shall they hear without a preacher ? And how shall they preach except they be sent ? But the time does not allow us to dwell on the call and qualifications of the Gospel ministry. 4. Let me urge you, young men, in the next place, to endeavor most carefully to find out the intimations of Providence in regard to the husi- ness you should follow. I have reference here to your education, health, and place of resi- dence. The influence of early training is felt and acknowledged by all. It was ascertained a few years ago, that out of one hundred and nine theological students, ninety-seven had either a pious father or mother, and eighty- eight had parents both of whom were pious. And the history of revivals of religion, and THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOI^. 281 even of conversions late in life, shows that tliey are almost all to be traced to early religious instruction. The seed grows after having long remained dormant. Samuel and Timothy, Au- gustin and Doddridge, are well known examples of parental piety giving shape to the character of their children. General Jackson's rio;id adherence to the articles of reli2:ion as a matter of faith — articles which he never allowed any one to dispute or ridicule in his presence w^ithout rebuke, is with- out doubt to be attributed to his mother's catechism and influence upon him in his ear- liest years. His aftection for his wife and re- gard for her religious feelings are equalled only by the veneration he had for his mother. So strong were his convictions of the divinity of Christ and the inspiration of the Bible, that it was displeasing to him to hear them preached upon. He considered it useless to argue with a 'man that did not believe them. On one occasion at dinner with some British officers and others, one of his guests suggested that if we left the Bible out of the question he could 282 THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSION prove Ids position to be true, upon wliich the old liero, brim^inof Ids Land down with con- siderable violence upon the table, said : " Never give up the Bible, sir, we can't give up the Bible." And General Havelock's whole reli- gious character can be easily traced to the care- ful relio-ious training: of his mother durino* his infantile years — perhaps to the first six years of his life, while he was yet under his father's roof. It was his mother's custom to assemble her children regularly around her knees every day, and read a portion of the Bible to them, and pray with them, and explain religious mat- ters to them. It was thus the English mother, in her humble house in Kent, was educating the British hero for Birmah, Affghanistan and In- dia. It was there he learned those sterling principles that gave him strength for the day of trial. And at the first school he attended, so remarkable were his ha1>its, that he was nicknamed ^'' old plilos^'' that is, the philosopher. And at nine years we see "the man of fifty- seven through an inverted telescope." And, of (X)urse, you must consider your health and THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSION. 283 l)liysical qualifications for the ot'cu])ation you propose to follow. Health and capacity to labor and endure liave a great deal to do with success in the world. A dumb man is not called to be an orator, nor is one of incurable stammering or of lungs so weak that he cannot engage in public speaking, called to be a law- yer or a preacher of the Gosj^el. The matter of health is too often overlooked. It is as much a sin to neglect the body as it is to neglect the heart. A spendthrift of health is a suicide where more than blood is sj)ilt. For good health has a great deal to do with talents and success in life, and is not without its influence upon the realities of eternity. "Take," says one, " a lawyer's life through, and high health is at least equal to fifty per cent, more brain. The credit awarded to intellect is often due to digestion. Endurance, cheerfulness, wit, elo- quence attain a- force and sj)lendor, with health, which they can never approach witliout it." You must consider, also, the ciucumstances of tlie place where you live. Such as to which calling or profession has the greatest opoiiii g 284 THE CHOICE or a PROFESSIOIS". for usefulness. Where your country lias tlie greatest need of farmers, sailors, soldiers, me- chanics, mercliants, physicians, lawyei's or min- isters of the Gospel, and which calling or pro- fession is the most crowded. As those born inland in farming districts are apt to become ftirmers, and those born on the seashore are more apt to become seafaring men, so you should consider whether your residence near an institution of learning and opportunities to obtain a liberal education, are not jorovidential allotments, directing you to literary pursuits and some one of the learned professions. While one's youthful tastes or inclinations are not always infallible as to what kind of business is to be followed, still they should be most care- fully considered. For, as the best medical treatment is to work with nature in her strug- Ldes to throw off ailments and overcome ob- structions to her healthful funotions, so as far as possible we should try by education and our daily pursuits to suji^^le^^^ent nature, and help her to her highest aspirations. As our fallen nature is sinful, we must be careful how Tin: CHOICE of a pkofessio:n". 285 Ave }'iel(l ourselves to our natural preferences in clioosing a business for life. That sucli youtliful preferences are not always riglit, is clearlv proven from tlie fact tliat tliey are not always successful, nor are they abiding. On the contrary, they are .found to be spasmodic or fickle. A sliii:ht chansfe of circumstances, or the flight of a few years, or the presence of a new acquaintance, or the absence of an old one, sometimes creates new tastes, or awakens just as strong preferences for another pursuit as were entertained a short time ago for a totally different one. Such j^references are often mere fancies. They are often delusions. The point should be decided upon j^rinciple. Numerous cases, and of distinguished men, too, could be » given, in Avliich it was found after years of trial, and a great loss of time and energy, that a mistake had been made in following these natural preferences in youth, and a radical chamxe was made. There can be no doubt but that sometimes it is the duty of a man to change his business or his profession. This cannot be wrong in itself, but on the contrary, 286 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION. from liealtli or other circumstances it may be- come a duty. A few years' experience may be necessary to develop wliat pursuit or kind of business we are the best fitted for. It is veiy evident either that some .men have made a mis- take in their calling, or else they are iit for no business at all. They are^ either dn the wrong business or they do not attend to the right business in the right way, and in either case, the sooner they correct their mistakes the bet- ter for themselves and others. They are so fretful and unhappy, and attend to their calling so badly, that it is clear they are in the wrong place, or else not fitted for any place. Our doctrine on this subject is, that many men are attempting to do what Providence never called them to do, and that they ought to change eithei* their calling or their manner of attending to it. For we hold that it is the duty of every Christian man and woman to strive to excel in whatever they profess to do. If a Christian Avoman has to nurse, or spin, or sew, or teach, the should aim at beins^ the best nurse and the best worker. And if a Christian gains his liv THE CHOICE OF A PE0FESSI01S-. 287 ing by gardening or making boots, let liim have the best vegetables and make the best boots in market. And so of every calling, from the humblest to the hii^'hest. That such should be our aim as a matter of policy and gain, may be taken for granted ; but that is not enough. Christians are to covet earnestly the best* gifts. It is their duty to seek superior excellence.. They are to do more than publicans and sin- ners. And on this point, also, two remarks seem to be called for ; firsts as a general rule in our country, young people commence business or begin the duties of life too early. This has a serious and most baneful effect upon them in after life. It destroys the enthusiasm, cheer- fulness and vigor that should iij)hold them in mature years. It is better that our boys live in less luxury, or even without some com- forts at home, than that they should begin to make and spend money in their minority. And secondly^ it is a common fault in our day that our youth are so conceited, self-willed and obstinate, that they will not take the ad- vice of jiarents, teachers, and friends of 288 THE CHOICE of a professiois". advanced years, as to wliat kind of business tliey sliould engage in. Parents, friends, and pastors may not always kno^v " what manner of child this should be f yet surely every young man should examine well his endow- ments and qualifications, and let the multitude of years sj)eak to him, and age give him coun- .sel, in deciding what business or j)rofession his special gifts and circumstances may point out to him as his pursuit for life. Again, it will hardly be doubted that the moral tendency of the business w^e are deliberating about should be well considered ; such as its liability to temptations to wrong doing, or its adaptation to promote our intellectual and spiritual im- provement. AYe are not, indeed, to seek only our own interests ; and yet we cannot help i^ro- moting our own highest good by choosing the right profession, and the riglit profession for us is the one in wdiich we can get and do the most good. Some callings afford greater opportuni- ties than others for reading, and others are more favorable for the development of the reli- gious sentiment. For although the sweat of THE CHOICE OF A PEOEESSION. 289 tlie man at tlie plougli or at the anvil is just as lionorable as the sweat of the lawyer at the bar, or of the statesman in the forum, still the ploughman and blacksmith have not the oppor- tunities for mental cultivation that belonor to o the lawyer or senator. The toil of the mer- chant may be as honest, and as pious, and as acceptable to God as that of the pastor, but it is not so favorable for the genial studies and pursuits of cultivated minds. And it is no doubt because secular business, trade, and the learned professions are so engrossing that they do not allow or encourage that devotion to the culture of the mind and heart, that are requi- site to eminence, that so few, comparatively so few are found earnestly pursuing secular avo- cations, that are at the same time eminent for their piety. Ordinarily eminent piety is pre- ceded by, and still nurtured with much prayer and special attention to the reading of God's word. And this requires time and energy. Aud hence we should expect more piety, eleva- tion of thousrht, and culture of intellectual powers in the ministry than in any other em- 13 290 THE CHOICE or a peofessiois". ployment. As the subjects with whicli tlie teachers of Christianity are familiar are the most momentous that can occupy the human mind, so we naturally expect that a devotion to them would quicken and strengthen the intel- lect and improve the heart. The greatest ene- mies of human happiness are the trinity of human depravity : " the world, the flesh, and the devil." And it is perfectly clear that some callings are more beset by these than others. The love of ease is natural to the carnal mind. Sloth is a dangerous foe to all improvement. To hide our talent in a napkin is to betray our trust and dishonor our creation. And so also vanity and ambition, or the inordinate desire for fame, has slain its thousands. " How can you believe," said our Lord, "which seek honor one of another, and seek not the honor that- cometh from God only ?" Let not the mse man glory in Ms wisdom; nei- ther let the mighty man glory in his might ; let not the rich man glory in his riches ; but let him that glorieth, glory in this that he understandeth and knoweth me, that I am the THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIOIS'. 291 LoKD wliicli exercise loving kindness, judg- ment, and rigliteonsness, in tlie earth : for in these things I delight, saith the Lord. Jere- oniali ix. 24. The love of the things of this world grows by indulgence. The root of all evil is the love of money, " which while some coveted after, they have erred from the faith, and pierced themselves through with many sorrows." ^' They that will be rich, fall into a temptation and a snare, and into many hurtful and foolish lusts, which drown men in destruction and perdi- tion." Observation fully confirms these texts of Scripture as to the blinding, absorbing, de- moralizing, dangerous tendency of the inordi- nate love of the world. It is important, there- fore, that a young man in choosing his business for life, and in the prosecution of it, should well consider the temptations it will present to him, and the hindrances that may be connected with it in the way of his mental and moral im- provement. And the more so, because it is by these professional avenues, adaptations or pecu- liar tendencies that the evil one always makes 292 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOIn'. his most deadly assaults. Is tlie calling, tlien, you are about to choose favorable or otherwise to your mental growth and spiritual welfare, or is it one that will deprive you of such advan- tages, and expose you to idleness, luxury or vice ? Will it help or hinder you in your way to heaven ? If then, as Ave have seen, our ovv n personal* well-being is not inconsistent with our duty to our fellow men and our Creator, but is a part of it, it must also be true that virtue should be its own reward, at least in part, in this world ; and that we should seek for glory, honor, and immortality in the world to come. It is according to the Scriptures that we should have respect unto the recompense of rewards. Moses ig commended for this. It is given as a proof of his heroic faith, that " he refused to be called the son of Pharaoh's daughter ; choosing rather to suffer affliction with the peoj^le of God, than to enjoy the pleasures of sin for a season: esteeming the reproach of Christ greater riches than the treasures in Egypt : for he had respect unto the recompense of the re wardP Several points are revealed in the THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION. 293 Word of God as to tlie rewards of eternity, tliat should be well considered. 1. Tliey are to be in proportion to tlie trials of tliis life. We understand our Lord to teacL. this principle when inculcating self-denial as at the very beginning of our discipleship. "If any man will come after me, let him deny him- self, and take up his cross, and follow me. For whosoever will save his life shall lose it, and whosoever will lose his life shall find it. Then Peter said, Lo, we have left all and followed thee. And he said unto them, Verily, I say unto you, there is no man that hath left house, or parents, or brethren, or Avife, or children, for the kingdom of God's sake, who shall not re- ceive manifold more in this present time, and in the world to come life everlastincr." And so Paul teaches, when he says : " For I reckon that the sufferings of this present time are not woi-thy to be compared with the glory that shall be revealed in us ?" " Rejoice, inasmucli as ye are partakers of Christ's sufferings ; that, when his gloiy sliall be revealed, ye may be 29.1: THE CHOICE OF A TROFESSION. glad also witli exceeding joy." " A witness of the sufferings of Christ, and also a ])ai'taker of the glory that shall be revealed." '' Yea, doubt- less, and I count all things but loss for the ex- cellency of the knoAvledge of Christ Jesus, my Lord ; that I may know him, and tlie power of his resurrection, and the fellowship of his suf- ferings, being made conformable unto his death ; if, by any means, I may attain unto the resur- rection of the dead." The rule is, If we suffer WITH Christ we shall iieigis: with in^r. The enjoyment of heaven will be the more glorious because of the trials we pass through. " That the trial of your faith, being much more pre- cious than of gold that perisheth, though it be tried w4th. fire, would be found to praise, and honor, and glory at the appearing of Jesus Christ." " What are these Avhich are arrayed in white robes ? and whence came they ? And he said unto me, These are they which came out of great tribulation, and have washed their robes, and made them white in the blood of the Lamb. Therefore are they before the throne THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION. 295 of God, and serve liiin day and night in liis temple : and lie that sitteth on his throne shall dwell among tlieni." 2. Tlie rewards of eternity are to he a/xxrrd- ing to every mau^-s- lahor done in the hody. This la})or njiist he, however, fi-orn pure motives, from love to (lod and man. The love of Christ must constrain us to the consecration of our- selves to his cause. The great Calvin, in ex- pounding the text: "They that be wise shall shine as the In'iLchtness of the firmament; and they that turn many to righteousness as the stars forever ;" says it means, " that the sons of (jrod who, being devoted entirely to God and ruled by the spirit of wisdom, point out the way of life to others, shall not only be saved themselves, but shall possess surpassing glory, far beyond anything which exists in this world. Hence we gather the nature of true wisdom to consist in submitting ourselves to God in sim- [>le teachaldeness, and in manifesting the addi- tional, quality of carefully promoting the sal- vation of our brethren." The rule is that in bestowing eternal life upon his followers,' a 296 THE CHOICE or A PROFESSIOIT. special reward is attaclied to special gifts and services. Our Lord accordingly promised to the apostles, in view of tlie extraordinary trials, sufferings and labors tLrougli which they were called to go, that they should " sit on twelve thrones judging the twelve tribes of Israel." Paul was, therefore, authorized to say, when he contemplated the end of his mortal race, con- flict and labor here below : " Thenceforth there is laid up for me a. crown of righteousness, which the Lord, the righteous judge, shall give me at that day : and not to me only, but unto all them also that love his appearing. The plain meaning of which is, that a special crown was prepared for him in proportion to his labors performed out of love to Christ. Paul, in his letter to the Corinthians (1 Cor. iii.), expressly tells us that, neither is he that plant- eth anythingj neither he that watereth : but God that giveth the increase. Now he that planteth and he that watereth are one: and every man sliall receive Ms own reivard accord- ing to Ids own lahor. And then he ex^^jlains, that according to the chai-acter of a man's work, THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIOlSr. 297 wlietlier it be gold, silver, precious stones, or \yo^d, liay, stubble — wlietlier it abide the trial by ii]*e, for the fire shall try every man's works of what sort it is — so sliall lie receive a reivard. And every man sliall receive Ids own reward according to Ids own lahor, Not according to talents, gifts or station ; not according even to pur successors, but according to our labors, we are to be rewarded. Diversity of gifts in unity of purpose is God's law in all his works. Min- isters and teachers and persons in all pursuits have different gifts, and different services to perform, and the rule by which they are to be rewarded at last, is according to their labor. It is a great comfort to see the fruit of our labors now, but if not, our record is on high. In one of the publications of the A, S, S. Union,, there is an allegory to the following effect. We do not attempt to recite it word for w^ord, but p'ive an abrido^ment of it from one of the an- nual reports of the late Eev. Dr. Van Rensse- laer, of the Board of Education, to tlie General A^ssembly. Indeed, we are indebted to this report for suggesting this discourse, and for 298 THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIOIST. many hints and tlioughts, all of wlilch we have freely used. The allegory is called " T^ie Crow2^ Koom." a pious yoiing man of prom- ising talents and prospects felt imj)ressed with the idea that it was his duty to preach the Gospel. He was exceedingly reluctant, how- ever, to devote himself to the service of God in the Gospel of his Son. The struggle was, continued for months. His worldly ambition and wealthy and fashionable friends ^pleading on the one side,' and the voice of his soul seem- ing to rise up from its depths, saying, "Woe is me, woe is me, if I preach not the Gospel." At last he thought he had rightly settled the question. He determined not to jDreach the kingdom of God, engaged in business, and his immediate success he considered as a j)roof that he had done ricclit. He soon became a man of large wealth. 'Nor did he forsake the cause of Christ. He maintained his Christian profes- sion, and was punctual at the prayer meeting, and gave liberally at the missionq^ry concerts. After being at a large meeting in behalf of missions, he returned home, and soon fell asleep, THE CHOICE OF A professio:n-. 299 when lie dreamed tliat an angel of great glory a2:)proaclied him and invited him to follow liim. He did so until lie readied the gate of a stu- pendous edifice. After entering its apartments, whose dimensions and mao-nificence amazed and awed him, " This," said his angel guide, " is the Croton Hooni^ and here you see deposited the cro^vns which await the faithful when they have finished their course." And oh, what a sight was there presented to his eyes ! Ar- ranged in glittering rows, one above the other, suspended from the lofty dome and piled up on every side, were innumerable crowns of every size, form and device. Some of these were simple circlets or crescents of gold, con- taining here and there a single jewel; others more thickly sprinkled with brilliants or stud- ded with gems. Long and earnestly did he look at the glories that surrounded him until his guiding angel reminded him that it was time to return, and began to move out, but said, " Thy crown is yet to be won." But being reluctant to leave, his eyes were at last fixed upon a crown which he had not before ob- 300 THE CHOICE OF A PROFESSIOT^- served. It was gorgeous witli brilliants, and as lie gazed npon it a strange fascination seized him. He trembled as lie gazed, and tears fell from Lis eyes as lie exclaimed : O earth, earth ! what canst thou offer like this ? Tell me, oh, thou shining one ! for what favored being can this glorious crown be reserved — ^who shall be worthy to wear it at last ? " Alas ! alas !" said the angel, "I know not ! once, indeed, it seemed ready for thee, but thou knewest not the time of thy visitation. Thou didst turn away from yonder glittering crown. I know not who shall stand in thy lot, or wear that resplendent diadem !" Startled, he awoke from his slum- bers. The scales fell fi'om his eyes, and he saw how he "had temj^orized with duty, and had offered gold^ gold, GOLD instead of the living sacriiice. How he had allowed the pleasures and gains of earth to delude him. He strug- gled long and earnestly for forgiveness. He now prayed, not *'I pray thee have me ex- cused," but in the very words of our text, " Lord, what wilt thou have me to do ?" " Here am I,'' said he, " send me now, O Lord, if thou THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOl^. dOl canst after so mucli nnwortliiiiess and so great neglect of tluty." Bitterly, most bitterly did lie mourn over liis folly and repent Lis waste of talents, loss of time and misuse of precious gifts. But at length, finding peace, and be- coming assured tliat it was liis duty to preacli the Gospel, he took up his cross and went forth as Christ's ambassador. Domestic ties and many worldly cares were now a serious hin- drance in his way, but by divine grace he was enabled to strive for the prize set before him, and to do a great and blessed work in the ser- vice of his gracious Master. Young men^ let me beseech you to choose an occupation that will bear the scrutiny of the last day. Con- "sider well the principles laid down arid briefly alluded to or illustrated in this discourse. Your happiness now and through a boundless eternity, as well as that of those whose life and being may be bound up in yours, depends very much upon your making choice of the right kind of an employment or pursuit in life. Choose, then, your calling in the fear of God, and so pursue it as to show that you are called 302 THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSION. of God to it, and tliat in it you are seeking to please Him who is invisible, and to gain glory, honor and immortality in his presence. Make your choice deliberately and according to high and noble principles, and then pursue your em- ployment boldly, conscientiously, devotedly, persistently. A wrong choice, or a negligent pursuit even of the right calling, is a life of monotony for your own souls, a palsy in your own homes, and a misfortune or an injustice to others ; while, on the other side, he that is wise is wise not only for himself, but for others — a wise choice and a wise pursuit is the life of the crowned and reigning spirit. Tliy crown., young man, is yet to he won. God help you to gird on your armor, and help you to win it. It is a resplendently glorious crown, to wduch your age, your country and your God calls yoU. It is for you to become a light always moving in the creation of God, in a wider and a higher sphere — discovering always, illuminating al- ways, gaining every hour in strength for bolder and more lofty flights, yet bowed down every liour into deeper humility ; sure of being always THE CHOICE OF A PEOFESSIOIC. 303 and irresistibly in an upward progress ; liappy in what you have achieved, happier still in the greatness of the w^ay before you, and happiest still at the close of life, when all other names of dearest ties may fade from the memory, to be refreshed by the recollection of that name which is above every name, happiest at the close of life, when the ri^rht hand bele and extreme dano^er, either by severe oppression, or by a sudden assault upon his person, or by some unjust pro- cess of law. As for example, if a person is con- demned by false witnesses, and it is wdthin our poAver to furnish the proofs of the perjury of the witnesses and the . innocence of the party accused, then it is our solemn duty to do it. Among the Jews, it was allowed that if any j)erson could offer anything in favor of a j)i'i- soner, after sentence was passed, it was his duty to do so before the execution. According to the Mishna it was usual when a man was led to execution, for a crier to go before him and [)roclaim : " Tliis man is no^v going to be exe- cuted for such a ciime, and such and such are witnesses against him : Whoever knows him to be innocent, let him come forth and make it appear'' Quoted by Dr. Doddridge. 306 EESPOIN^SIBILITT FOE THE It is admitted tliat if any one is attacked by force, and liis property and life are in danger, it is our duty to iiy to liis assistance, if tliere is a greater probability that we can save liis life than tliat we should lose our own in the attempt to save him. Thus, if we see any one through ignorance or thoughtlessness exposing himself to danger, or about to walk over a pre- cij)ice, or to fall into the hands of thieves, or to take a wrong road, or get into any other dis- tress, as strangers, travellers, and ships at sea, and all such cases ; then, though it might be with ex23ense, toil and trouble to ourselves, and even with great difficulty and i3eril, and with- out any reward or even return of gratitude, still it is our duty, because of the great bonds of human brotherhood, and for the love of God the great Father of mankind, to hasten to their help and deliverance. Among the Egy]3tians, " to be the accidental witness of an attempt to murder, without endeavoring to prevent it, was reckoned a capital offence, which could only be palliated by bringing proof of absolute ina- bility to act. To be jpresent when any one SALVATION OF OUE FELH)W MEX. 30Y inflicted a personal injury on another without interfering, was tantamount to being a party to the eyil done, and was punishable according to the extent of the assault." * And if the nejilectinQ; of the natural liyes and estates of our fellow men be so highly criminal, it must be much more heinous in the sight of God, to permit the ruin of their charac- ter, or the defamation of their families, or the perdition of their souls, without doing eyery- thing ii^ our j)ower to saye them from being drawn unto death and slain by the sword of eternal justice. Secondly. It is supposed in the text, that they w^ho neglect to deliyer those that are drawn unto death and are ready to be slain, are prompt to excuse themselyes for this neglect. And this readiness to offer excuses is eyidence, jivst^ of a consciousness of guilt ; and secondly^ of hayino; offered yiolence to the best feelino;s of human nature. For our first im2)ulse on see- ing distress, is to endeayor to relieye it. Our hearts then leap into our bosoms, and we are * "Ancient Egypt," by the Carters, vol. 1., p. 80. 308 EESPONSIBILITY FOE THE ready to run to tlieir relief; butwlien cold and selfish calculation enters into tLe lieart, then we forbear. And here is the force of the terms — - if thou forbear to deliver tliem — that is, if thou check, or restrain, and hold back from doing what your heart prompts ; then " he that pon- dereth the' heart, and keepeth thy soul, doth not he know it? And shall he not render to every man according to his works V Thirdly. All such excuses, however, are vain. They are unavailing. If we succeed ii:w excus- ing: ourselves to ourselves and to our fellow men, it is a trifling matter. It is a light thing to be judged of man's judgment; he that judgeth thee is the Lord ; and he pondereth the heart ; he weisrhs in a most accurate balance, all its most secret sentiments. He that keepeth thy soul, doth he not know it ? His are all thy ways, even to the deep thoughts of thine heart; and he will render to every man ac- cording: to his works. Human laws may not punish for the neglect of our own or of the souls of our fellow men. The grand jury may not bring in an indict- SALVATION OF OUIl lELLOW MEN. 309 iLieiit for profane swearing, or for drunkenness, nor for destroying the liabits of onr young men, or for adultery and fornication, and lying and corrupting our })ul)lic morals. It may be the police cannot prevent men from exercising their ingenuity in decoying the innocent and delud.- ing the unwary stranger. There may be no statute against the omission of duty to the souls of men. The laws of the land may not be able to 2^nnish for the sins of the heart, or to enforce filial piety and love to God, and charity to our fellow men, still he that trieth the reins of the heart, knoweth all these things. And besides, there is the common law of humanity, the writ- ten law of benevolence, engraved on the hu- man heart and j^roclaimed from the statute book of heaven, requiring us to deliver those that are drawn unto death and are ready to be slain, and the supreme law-giver will render at last to every one according to his w^orks. The doctrine raised from this explanation of tlie text is, that there is a great eespoxsi- BILITY resting UPON US TO DESIRE AND LABOR 310 EESPOXSIBILITY FOR THE EARNESTLY FOR THE Sx^LVATIOTT OF OUR FELLOW MEX And tliis view of tlie text implies, 1. That our fellow men are in danger ; and that the wicked, the impenitent, and ungodly are in a dans^erous condition is clear from the Word of God. This danger is pointed to by the words : " If thou forbear to deliver them that are drawn unto death, and those that are ready to be slain." Drawn iinto cleatJi — ready to he slain^ are fearful words. And all the more fearful when we remember that it is of the soul rather than of tlie body that they are spoken. Have you ever seriously considered what is meant by the slaying of the soul — by the death of the soul ? What is the death of the soul ? Is there, in- deed, any reach of the human mind so capacious and all penetrating as to apprehend what it is to be lost ? If eye hath not seen, nor ear heard, nor heai't of man conceived, what are the joys of heaven : so neither hath eye seen, nor ear heard, nor heart of man conceived what is meant by the portion of. the finally impenitent ; the cup of trembling and wrath which an om SALVATION OF OUR FELLOW MY.^. 311 nipotent hand compels tliem to drink, because they rejected offered mercy and despised the free grace of God. Weeping and wailing, and ernasliino; of teeth, and outer darkness and ban- ishment from 'the presence and glory of God, are some of the terms by which the doom of the wicked is described in the holy Scriptures. But, oh, situation how dismal ! " Dungeon horrible on all sides round As one groat furnace flam'd, yet from these flames No light, but rather darkness visible Serv'd only to discover sights of woe, Regions of sorrow, doleful sliades, where peace And rest can never dwell, hope never comes That comes to all ; but torture without end Still rages, and a fiery deluge, fed With ever-burning sulphur unconsum'd." And }■ et, is it not true tliat multitudes around us are living in sin and dying out of the present world every day without any preparation for a better life ? Does not a thoughtful survey of our streets confirm the Scripture view, that the wide gate and the broad way wliich leads to death are crowded, and that there are but few 312 EESPOXSIBILITY YOU THE in tlie narrow way wliicli leads to life ? Is it not true if we judge from our fellowMuen at large as tliey pass and repass before us in tlieir thousand thousand ways of conflict, suffering, living and dying, that Christ's fiock is small and the devirs herd is large ? If the destroy- ing angel was commissioned to j^ass over the cities of Christendom, and commanded to smite with, instant death all those who dwell in houses not marked with the blood of the great Paschal Lamb slain from the foundation of the world to take away its sin, to slay the first-born of all those families that do not call upon God by morning and evening prayer — who do not reverence the holy name of the God of Israel — who do not keep his day holy, and who do not take up their cross and follow Christ — brethren, would not loud and long wailings rise up from many of our dwellings if such a test as this were now applied in order that it might be seen w^ho is on the Lord's side and who is not ? It is fearful to move over a field of battle, when the missiles of destruction are flying, rolling, rattling and crashing in every direction ; or to SALYATIOZS OF OUU FELLOW ME:^-. 313 go tlirougli a populous city wLen an epidemic is prevailing, and deatli rides on every breeze ; l)ut, tliere is no ejDidemic like sin. It kills botk body and soul, and kills beyond tlie grave. Tliere is no deatli like eternal deatli, wkick is the second deatk — a deatk forever in the ex- tremest agonies of dying, and yet can never die. AYith all the allowances which that charity can make which believeth all things and hopeth all things, is it not true, that the marks of eternal death are on many of our fellow-men — that is, they are ungodly, impenitent, self righteous, disobedient, utterly careless or indifferent about religion, or they are profane, prayerless, im- moral, vicious ? And on others on whom the marks of evil doing are not displayed, there are, however, no signs of spiritual life. They are not seeking to be saved. They are not given to prayer. They do not love God, nor obey his Son Jesus Christ. And if the right- eous scarcely be saved, where shall the ungodly and the sinner appear ? What shall be the end of those who know not God, and obey not the Gospel of his Son? O that the dreadful U 314 EESPONSIBILITY FOR THE contagion of sin could be destroyed ! But alas ! it is an epidemic that ragetli everywliere in our fallen world, and ragetli evermore win- ter and summer, seed time and harvest. It never abates. .Sin abounds and deatli reigns. "For death from sin, no power can separate." Xow a few considerations will make it plain, that the impenitent are in danger of eternal death. First^ they are in a great measure care- less on the subject of religion. Intelligent, energetic, whole-hearted on all other subjects, they are indifferent to this the first and great- est concern of every human being. Their care- lessness may arise from a variety of causes, but in every case it is dangerous. Some think themselves wise and increased in goods, while in fact they are stupid, ignorant and miserably poor. Their prosjDerity is either a mere fancy, or it is the verdure of the hill-side just below the volcanic crater, whose groanings are already to be heard as notes of preparation for the over- flowing flood of fire that will sweep all belov/ to destruction. They are sick, but think them- selves in health. They will die, if no physician SALVATION OF OUR FELLOTV MEN. 315 saves tliem ; but tliey do not feel tlieir need of one. Tlieir carelessness is tlie calm that pre- cedes the storm. It is a calm produced by ig- noi'ance or stu2:)idity, if not by an entire with- drawing of divine influence. Indifferent, uncon- cerned, no mind or heai-t for eternal realities ; how can they be saved ? The Lord's day they do not keep holy. Their backs are turned upon the Lord's house, where his word is preached ; and their Bible, the gift of a parent, or of a " sister dear " who has passed into the skies, if not lost, is at least not read ; nor do they now repeat " Our Father " and lift up their hearts to God as they were taught to do in prayer in the home of their youth. LIow, then, can they be saved who neglect so great a salvation ? Those who despised the law of Moses died without mercy ; but to despise the Gospel is a greater crime, and deserves a great- er punishment. Those who seek not mercy now, according to tlie Gospel, shall never have it. This is the acceptable time; this is the day of salvation. If it be neglected, there is then no more hope. But, secondly^ our impeni- 316 EESPOKSIBILITY FOE THE tent fellow-men are in great danger, because the manner of tlieir lives is contrary to God's laws, and therefore exposes tliem continually to his righteous judgments. Some men are content with a mere name for decency and good manners ; others are amiable and correct and well to do in the world ; and others even have the form of godliness ; and yet all these are without true piety. Some even draw nigh to God with their mouth, and honor him with their lips, whose heart is far from him. Then there are others who are living in oj^en sin. They glory in their shame. Their sins are open beforehand, going before to the judgment, and some men's sins follow alter. The works of the flesh, which are the works of the wicked One, are manifest, which are " adultery, forni- cation, uncleanness, ^vrath, murder and drunk- enness." And they that do such things show too clearly that they are of their father, the devil, and the lusts of their father they will do. They are servants of sin, and living after the flesh, they must die — For tlie tuirigliteous can- not inlierit the Mngdom of God. Thirdly. An- SALVATIOX OF OUR FELLOW IS'LEN. 317 otlier proof of the imminency of tlie danger that threatens our im]3enitent fellow men, is that great and fundamental errors are abroad in the world — and many are led away from the truth as it is in Jesus, and many even substitute these false doctrines and damnables heresies, as an apostle has called them, for the vital doc- trines and true views of our holy religion. They receive as and/w' the precious Gospel of Christ, what is in fact another Gospel. The fancies and traditions and commandments of men are substituted for the commandments of the living God. A "will-worship" is put in the place of the worship God has appointed. Human means are made sufficient without the atonement of the Son of God. Now it cannot be true that all religions are equally good. It cannot be true that a man is not responsible for what he believes. It cannot be true that it makes no difference what a man believes if he is only sincere. If this were so, then there would be no difference between right and wrong. Nor could there be any standard of right and wrong. But we know there is such a differ- 318 EESPONSIBILITY FOE THE ence, and tliat tliere is sucli a standard, and tlie proof of this is tlie universal conscience, con- fession and practice of tlie human race. And we know also that as a man thinketh in his heart, so is he. We know that truth appre- hended is a principle, and that a principle ap- prehended excites an emotion, a desire, a will, and leads to action, so that from belie vino- comes thinking, and then doing. Truth in itself is infinitely precious. It is separated by an infinite space from error. And while truth is saving, error is destroying. It does, there- fore, make a great difi*erence what a man be- lieves, for without his intending it, or perceiv- it, his conduct is moulded by his belief And besides, a man is as much accountable for the doctrines he believes, the sentiments he > holds, the opinions he utters, as he is for the example he sets or the actions he performs. Nor does a man's good intentions excuse him for wrong doing, when he could have known what was right by taking heed to the will of God. Nor doofi a man's sincerity in l^s belief save him fro-a responsibility. A man's sincere belief SALVATION OF OUR FELLOW MEN. 319 tliat his neiglibor was honest does not save liim from the loss he sustains when that neigh- bor runs away with his money. Nor does a man's perfect honesty save him from death, if by mistake he has taken poison that kills instead of the powder that was to heal. It is our duty to know and believe the truth, and nothing but the truth. And for this very pur- pose God has endowed us with reason, intel- lectual powers, speech and the means of know- ledge, and has revealed his will for our salva- tion. It is by the truth we are begotten to a lively hope, and made free from sin. A man's life cannot be in the rio;ht, if his faith be in the wrono; ; for his conduct will flow from wTono- motives and aims — his actions will be the pro- ducts of erroneous principles, and however sin- cere, error never can produce right. Since, therefore, it is ]3hilosoj)hical as well as scriptural that some errors are " damnable," it is of the greatest importance that men should have clear and proj)er views of the divine cha- racter — of the law of God and of themselves — of its reach, spirituality and requirements, and 320 EESPOl^SIBILITY FOK THE of themselves as guilty in tlie siglit of God, and of their need of Christ as a Saviour, and be able to apprehend his willingness and suffi- ciency as a Redeemer. And since, according to the Word of God, we cannot be saved without iioliness — without beins: born ao-ain — without I'epentance and faith, and since so many are living around us who give no evidence of re- pentance toward God, nor of faith in Jesus Christ, is not the conclusion forced upon us, tliey are draivn tmto deaths and are ready to he slain? What becomes of the thousands of souls that leave our mortal shores every year ? Whither do they go \ What reasonable, scrip- tural hope is there that the majority of those who are now intent on gain or pleasure, and elbowing their way through our streets, will be saved when they die ? Around how many of their dying couches will be gathered a j)raying band to commit the departing spirit to Jesus Christ! Ah! is it not enough that they die in wretchedness — that they die under the stare of strange faces, and among a people they have not known ? Is it liot enouo-h that no mother. SALYATIOIsr OF OUK FELLOW MEN. 321 sister or wife will be there to watcli tlieir last mo- ments witli angel love, and when death has done its work, to close the eye and commit the body to dust — to strange dust, where sleej) not the bones of fathers and their kindred ? Is this all ? Very far from it. This is only the death of the body. But — 'Tis not the whole of life to live, Nor all of death to die ; Beyond this vale of tears There is a life above, Unmeasured by the flight of years, And all that life is love. There is a death whose pang Outlasts the fleeting breath ; Oh, what eternal horrors hang Around the second death !" 2. Let us consider next, some of the excuses usually made or offered against our res])onsi- hility for tlie salvation of our felloiv men. F'irst. It is sometimes criven as a reason for neglecting the spiritual welfare of those around us, that we do not know, and that indeed it is not our business to know anything of their spi- ritual state. Now, if by this is meant that every 14* 322 EESPONSIBILITY FOR THE man must stand or fall before liis own master: that every one lias to appear before God for himself and not for another, and stand alone in the judgment as to his own individuality; — if by this is meant, that we are to mind our own business, and not meddle with the affairs of others, and that every one must work out his own salvation with fear and trembling, then it is all right. But if by this is really meant that we are ignorant of the dangerous condition of our impenitent fellow men, and that we are ex- cused from feeling any anxiety or from doing anything to save their souls, then it is a wicked, atheistic, cruel fallacy, alike contrary to com- mon charity and Grospel fraternity. Do not hiow that sinners as-ainst God are in dano^er of his judgments ! And is it true, that you do not know that the wrath of God is revealed from heaven against all ungodliness and un- rig:hteousness of men ? Are not our fellow men out of Christ, living in sin, in the gall of bitter- ness and the bondage of iniquity, dead, abso- lutely dead in trespass and in sins ? Do you not believe that all men are sinners against SALVATIOX OF OUE FELLOW ]\rE]^. 323 Gocl, and tlierefore cliildren of wrath, and tliat, as tlie Scriptures say, we must be born again, ])ecome new creatures in Christ, and have a new heart, or we cannot see the kingdom of heaven ? And are you not fully satisfied that human life is frail, short and uncertain; that ten thousand casualties and diseases are hurry- in 2: our fellow mortals to the crates of death and into an unchanging eternity ? And does not the wrath of God abide on every unbeliever? Will he not render indignation and wrath, tribulation and anguish, upon every man who dies in his sins impenitent, unpardoned, unre- newed ? Ai'e not the wicked and all they that forget God to be turned into hell ? Now, my brethren, do you not profess to receive the Scriptures as the Word of God ? How, then, can you say you do not know the danger of your fellow men who are living in sin ? Have you not yourself fled from the wrath to come, and do you not know that your friends who are yet living in sin are exposed to it ? What would become of your friend, relative, child, or neighbor, wlio is now Cliristless, wliose heart 324 EESPO]SrSIBILITY FOE THE has not been renewed by tlie grace of God, if they should die this moment? Without re- pentance, must they not perish ? Oh, say not, you know not their danger. Kather cry mightily to God that they may be saved, even as it were by pulling them out of the fire. Second. Others say they do not feel the re- sponsibility of which we are speaking, because they have their own affairs to attend to, and it is the minister's business to save the souls of men. Undoubtedly. It is true, you have your own souls to save and your own work to do, and it is the great business of ministers of the Gospel to labor to save the souls of men. They are set to watch for them as men that must give an account to God. But then have you no humanity ? Are you without the milk of human kindness ? Have you no sympathy, no fellow feeling for your own flesh and blood ? It is the privilege and the duty of parents, sabbath-school teachers, and preachers, to show unto the people the way of salvation — to tell them what they must do to be saved — but does this excuse any of God's people from SALYATIOIS' OF OUR FELLOW MEIST. 325 striving for the happiness of their feHow men ? If our country is plunged into a war, and our coasts are to be defended agaii^st a foreign, in- vading foe, would it then be enough to say, let the officers of the government attend to our de- fence. They are the sons of the sword, let them fight for us. It is their business. True it is their business, but their duty does not excuse you from the claims of j)atriotism and honor. And what can the officers do without soldiers ? They gain no victories with men of straw, nor with cork soldiers. It is theirs to plan, to lead, to command ; but the bone and sinew, the hand and the heart of the soldier in the rank and iile must be there to stand by the undaunted leader of the host, or all is lost. And just so it is with the ministers of the Gospel. They are God's servants, Christ's am- bassadors ; but they cannot do their own duty and that of the members of God's church also. Aaron and Hur must hold up Moses' hands while he prays, and Joshua leads the charge against the Amalekites. It is only thus the Philistines can be put to flight. The apostles 326 EESPONSIBILITY FOE THE were empowered to work miracles and to speak with tongues, and inspired to jDreacli and write by tlie Holy Spirit, yet we find them, and particularly Paul, the bravest and the most learned, most eloquent and intellectual one among them all, repeatedly and most earnestly asking the prayers of the Christian Churches. Should you not then pray for your pastor, look over his failings, "to his faults be a little blind," and love and obey him \ If you sin- cerely desire to remember his words, to profit by his instructions, you must pray for him and be a co-worker with him. Third. Others say, we are commanded not to cast our 'pearls before stvine^ and therefore we must just let our fellow men alone in their sins. And has the devil become a Bible col- porteur ? Do I see him carrying his green bag of books, and quoting the sacred Scriptures ? This is not at all improl)able. He quoted the Bible in his temptation of our Lord in the wil- derness, and our Lord conquered by quoting Scripture texts. The devil quoted to pervert and lead astray ; our Lord quoted to correct liis SALVATION OF OUE FELLOW METT. o27 wicked perversions, and to vindicate the ways of God. It is true tliat some men do more harm than good by being imprudent. Their words are not fitly chosen, or the time and place were not wisely selected. There is a zeal that is not according to knowledge. It is pos- sible to be overmuch zealous. [N'ew w^ine is not to be put into old bottles. The children of the bride chamber are not to fast w^hile the bridegroom is wdth them. There must be mod- eration, and some attention . to what is tit and becoming in times and places, characters and circumstances. But what miserable logic have we fallen on ? Bocause a man may be impru- dent, therefore he cannot be prudent. Because a man may be righteous over much, therefore, he must have no zeal at all. It is just the same logic that Milton puts into Eve's mouth, when she proposes to Adam to kill themselves to keep from dying. It is as practicable a method of doing our duty, as if we should say, it is possible we may be choked to death by eatluG!:, therefore, we will starve to death. Our LorrI does indeed tell us not to cast our pearls 328 EESPOKSIBILITY FOR THE before swine. Are all impenitent men, there- fore, swine? Is there no way to administer reproof for sin ? Tlie Saviour's admonition im- plies that there is a prudent way by which to win the souls of men, and • hence He warns us against defeating our purposes, and bringing upon ourselves contempt by injudicious at- tempts. There is an of&cious j)ietism, a cant — a long-faced whining and praying in tlie streets, and intruding evangelical tracts and conversa- tion upon travellers, and even into people's houses, that is certainly unbecoming and highly injurious ; but surely it does not follow, be- cause of such ignorant and rude abuses, that we should all sit still, and see our fellow men drawn unto death and ready to be slain, and do nothins: to save them. AVas it not Judas, who said, what is that to us ? And was it not Cain, who said : Am I my hrotliei^s Iceeper f Away with all companionship with such cruel cies, away with such miserable sophistry as this, which the devil puts into men's heads to the everlasting undoing of multitudes of precious souls ! FoiiHli. Others say, our fellow men are oble SALVATION OF OUR FELLOW ME]N-. 329 to take care of tliemselves, tliey liave tlie means of grace — tlie Lord's day, the cliurcli and tlie minister, an open Bible, as good an education as we Lave — they are free agents — they know their duty ; let them attend to their own souls, why should ^ve trouble ourselves about them ? And truly it is a blessed thing to live in our day — to have the mantle of Puritan, Huguenot and Covenanter sires, who were the elect of heaven to preach the Gospel on this continent, and make the wilderness vocal with tlie wor- ship of God. It is a great privilege to have ministers of the Gosj^el among us, who show unto men the way of salvation. It is, indeed, our crowning excellence, that we have houses of worship and schools for all sorts of children, and that the word of God runs swiftly over the land, and the printing press is casting the fruits of the tree of life abroad over all continents, and that a greater and a more decided Christ- ian influence prevails over mankind than ever before since the foundation of the world, but still all these privileges do not excuse God's people from personal anxiety and efforts to 330 EESPOTTSIBILITY FOE THE advance Lis kingdom in tlie world. Tlie mere letter of the Gospel does not convert and save. It is not by might nor by power, saith God, but by my s]3irit that men are converted and saved. And God's spirit is given in answer to prayer. His well-beloved son is to ask him for the heathen, and then he gives the utter- most parts of the earth to him for a possession. And, besides, it is well known that those who are most in need of the saving j)ower of the Gospel do not themselves feel the need of it. They are dying for the want of bread, but have no appetite. Dying for the water of life, but have no thirst for it. They must be assisted, or they will never get into the pool when the waters are troubled. They must be encouraged or even led to the house of God or they will never hear the words of everlasting truth. It is known historically that savage nations are never civilized by an indigenous outgrowth. It has always been the result of something introduced from abroad. The germ of their civilization has always been j^l^^wted among them by somebody else. It is j^hilosophical SALYATIOX OF OUE FELLOW MEIST. 331 tliat it should be so, for tlie stream cannot rise liisclier than the fountain. Like beo-ets like. The earth is of the earth, eartliy. It is then most clearly our duty, if God, for Christ's sake, has oj^ened our eyes, to j)ray to him to 023en the eyes of our fellow men, and to endeavor to get them in the way that is most likely to prove availing to them for such a blessing. It is plainly our duty to furnish places of worship and the means of Christian instruction to all our fellow men, and then to do all we can to induce them to profit by such opportunities. If, by any fatal depravity, our fellow-citizens were so obstinate that they would sit in their counting-houses or stores, or starve to death in their parlors rather than procure and take their daily bread, would it not be charitable in us to supply them, and to j)ersuade them to take it until they should so far recover as to knovv^ its value and seek it for themselves*? Is it not within the j)rudent, modest reach of the influ- ence of every one of you to induce a companion or acquaintance who does not now attend to religious things, to go to church and to keep 332 EESPONSIBILITY FOR THE tlie Lord's day holy 2 Is it not within tlie proper spliere of every one of you to J3ring some one to tlie Sunday school, the prayer meeting or the solemn assembly of God's peo- j)le on the Sabbath ? One word, one page, one prayer, one effort, with God's blessing, might be the means of saving many souls from death. And after all, my brethren, is it not to be feared that the true reason of our neglecting the souls of our fellow men is, that we do not realize the importance of salvation — we do not really feel enough for their souls — we do not sufficiently realize spiritual and eternal things — we do not apprehend the greatness of salva- tion, nor the preciousness of the blood of Christ. If we only apprehended what it is to be saved, or what it is to be lost, then surely we should do more to deliver the souls of men from death. ■A*nd the main reason why we do not realize these stupendous things is the want of faith. .We want more depth of feeling, be- cause we are ignorant and unbelieving. We have not a deep feeling for our fellow men be- cause we do not truly believe what the Word SALYATIO:^ OF OUR TELLOW MEN. 333 of God says, nor do we praj' for them, and love their souls as we should do, considering^ that we are redeemed by the blood of the Son of God. 3. A few reasons wliy we sliould earnestly strive to deliver our felloiv men from death. First. Our oivn experience slioidd teacli us to have compassion on the soids of otliers. Were we not in the same state by nature children of wrath even as others ? Were we not on the very brink of destruction, when sovereign mer- cy found us ; and shall w^e not seek to extend that mercy to others ? We have found him of whom Moses in the law and the prophets did write, and shall we not invite others to come and behold him. We have looked to Jesus that we might live ; and shall we not ^^oint others to the Lamb of God that taketh away the sins of the world ? We have tasted that the Lord is good and gracious ; and shall we not desire that all about us may have the same happy experience of his grace ? We have ob- tained the forg^iveness of sin throuofh faith in his name; and shall we not, like David, en- 334 EESPON'SIBILITY FOE THE cleavor to teacli transgressors liis ways? Oli, shall we not love the souls of others, as God, for Chiist's sake, hath loved us — shall we not have compassion on our fellow-servants, as the Lord continually hath pity on us ? Second. We are so constituted that we have much INFLUENCE UPON OUE FELLOW MEN. Noue of US can live to ourselves. Each one has a share of influence. All covet influence, and yet but few realize what it is to be a man of influence. So great, indeed, is the influence of mind upon mind, of heart upon heart, that it requires much zeal and prayer on our part for our neighbor, lest we be guilty of neglecting his soul. " Be ye not partakers of other men's sins." If ^ve forbear to deliver them that are drawn unto death and those that are ready to be slain — are we not partakers in their ruin ? Third. "We should earnestly strive to save tlie souls of our fellow men, who are drawn unto death and ready to be slain, because when they are converted to God, they are made Jia/p- l^y. The pleasures of religion are great both objectively and subjectively. The pious are SALVATION OF OUR FELLOW MEIT. 335 not only saved from tlie wratli to coine, ])ut tliey enjoy at present in tlie life that now is, a good hope through grace and the sense of par- doned sin, a persuasion of the favor of God toward them, a ])elief that all things are work- ing together for their good, and that when tliey die they shall go to heaven ; and besides, the pious find great delight in j^rayer and praise, in hearinof and readins: the Word of God, and in conversation with religious people. These are joys that satisfy and sanctify the mind, and, compared to which, all the frothy mirth and carnal pleasures of the wicked are mean as the toys of children, and hurtful as the sports of madmen. " The men of grace have found Glory begun below, Celestial fruits on earthly ground From faith and hope may grow." Wisdom's ways are ways of pleasantness and all her paths are paths of j)eace. Not a few have tried l)oth the pleasures of sin and the pleasures of religion, and have found that there is more happiness in one hour's communion 336 EESPOIS'SIBILITY FOR THE with God, tlian in days and montlis of sinful indulo;ence. The love of God is slied abroad in their liearts, which is unspeakable and full of glory. And the end of their faith is salva- tion — the joys and glories of the heavenly world. The Holy Scriptures teach us that Christ is gone to heaven to prepare mansions for his fol- lowers — that he will come ag:ain and take them to dwell with him where he is. The pure in heart shall see God. Verily there is a reward for the righteous. , Fourth. We slioiild earnestly desire and labor for the salvation of our fellow nien^ hecause thereby we shall promote our own ])resent and future happiness^ the good order and peace of society., and the glory of God. Christians are the salt of the earth. Ten rio^hteous men would have saved Sodom; and, verily, except the Lord had left us a seed, we had been as Sodom, and been* made like unto Gomorrah. The prayers of the pious are a greater defence to their country than all its fleets and armies — and that government is most likely to flourish in which the peoj^le of God are the most nu- SALVATIOlSr OF OUR FELLOW MEIS". 337 merous, and where trutli and rigliteousness most abound. As tlie meanest service we can do for Christ lias great refreshment in it, so whatever we can do for the souls of men from the love of God in our own hearts, increases our own happiness. Whatever is done unto one of the least of his disciples is done unto himself. They that be wise shall shine as the Ijrightness of the firmament, and they that turn many to righteousness as the stars forever and ever. Our blessed Lord sendeth us not on a warfare at our own charge ; not that we can do anything to bring God under obligations to re- ward us ; for all we are is of free grace ; and after we have done all, w^e are poor, unprofita- ble servants. Still it is a great honor to be the instrument of saving others. Such is the econo- my of grace, that in doing good to others, we ourselves are blessed. He that watereth the souls of others shall himself be watered. It is a glorious privilege to be made the means of bringing in a revenue to God's glory, year after year, and age after age. A good impression made in the Sabbath school, the influence of a 15 338 EESPONSIBILITY FOR THE Single word, or prayer, or tract, or the educa- tion of a single youth, or the sending out of a single missionary, and thus to preach Christ by proxy, may be the means of bringing in a har- vest of souls every year to the end of time. Herein is our highest honor, that we are co- workers with God and made like our merciful Father, who bestoweth his gifts upon us. What can we do to save our fellow men ? We should cherish a deep and ardent love for their souls ; we shoiild set them an example of faith and holiness, and invite them to the house of God ; provide places of worship for them, that they may have no excuse ; we should pray fervently for their conversion ; Paul may plant and Apollos water, but God giveth the increase. The love of our neighbors requires that we should pity and help them in time of sickness, in poverty or other temporal distress; how much more, then, should we care for their souls and labor earnestly to prevent their eternal ruin ! Solicitude for the health of their bodies and the well-being of their families and estates is esteemed friendship and love toward our fel- SALVATION OF OUR FELLOW MEIS-. 339 low men; Low mncli more, then, innmtely more, should we care for their souls ; for what is time and all its multitudinous cares to that vast abyss of eternity, " whose end no eye can reach ?" For what is a man profiled if he shall gain the whole world and lose his own soul I or what shall a man give in exchange for his soul? Mattliew xvi. 26. It were exceedingly important in such a city as ours, and in all new countries, and among all classes and assem- blages of men who are from home or cut oif from the enjoyments of social and domestic life, that the influence of our social nature could be secured on the side of virtue and reli- gion. Much good and much evil is done by example, by conversation and by throwing newspajDers, tracts and books in one another's way. One moment's reading while waiting in the parlor for the appearance of the friend called upon, or one sight of a picture, or one evening at a play or at the house of God, may fix the whole future character and eternal des- tiny of a young man or young v/oman. And if the children of the world are gregarious, and 340 EESPONSIBILITY FOR THE invite ana even drag each otlier into tlie drink- ing saloon and to the theatre and to the cham- bers of j)ollution and death ; how much more •should Christian young men deliver them that are drawn unto death and ready to be slain ! Perhaps no one thing destroys more men, espe- cially young men, in our large towns and newly settled States, and in our army and navy, than the want of proper female society. Permanent resident families are few in comparison with the mass, and they are from different parts of the world, and are engrossed with their own Social circles, and indifferent about widening them, and, consequently, husbands, brothers and sons aivay from lioine^ in such a community have but few of the enjoyments of proper society. They- seldom have opportunities to enjoy such refined delights, or to be strength- ened in their purposes of well-doing by the re- straints of sisters and mothers and pious female friends. Oh, it is greatly to be desired among us, that the hallowed influences of home should be thrown once more around the masses of men that are diir2:ii^2!: in our mountains, toilinsr in SALVATION OF OUR FELLOW MEIST. 341 GUI' valleys, or elbowing each otlier sliarply tlirouo'li our streets and our crowded saloons. EEFLECTIOl^S. First. Have we ever tliouglitfully considered what is meant by the death of an immortal soul ? Do we believe in its annihilation, or the destruction of its faculties, or the weaken- ing or stupefying of its sensibilities ? No. The death of the soul is its separation from the de- lights of tho pious, from the joys of heaven, the raptures of redeeming love, and from the favor of God, its eternal Father. And what is more, the death of the soul is not only the loss, the unspeakable loss of God and heaven and all that makes heaven, but it is to be shut up in hell, with ghosts and damned spirits scratched and scarred with the thunderbolts of omnipo- tent vengeance. To be excluded from heaven is to be cast into hell. To be driven from the glory of God is to have his wrath poured upon the soul ; and this is its death — woe, positive, lasting, deathless. But few of us desire to see, 342 EESPONSIBILITY FOR THE or can bear to witness one of our fellow men die as a terror to evil doers by tlie hand of tlie la^yful executioner. Even wliere tlie metliod and instrument of execution are as kind and gentle as human ingenuity can make them, still the spectacle is tragical — so tragical that I am persuaded it would rend many of you to the heart to see one of your number dragged out into the street and executed on the scaffold or under the guillotine. But what would this deplorable circumstance be in comparison to the destruction of the soul ! How much more deeply would it pierce your very souls to see the impenitent — ^however nearly related or by whom besfot it will not avail — to see them led forth to that last dreadful execution, when Christ shall say : " As for these, mine enemies, who would not that I should reign over them, bring them forth and slay them before me." Then will begin cries and wailings that shall never end! Truly, as the apostle says, "He that shall turn a ,sinner from the error of his ways shall save a soul from death." Second, Should it not excite us to more fer- SALVATION OF OUR FELLOW MEN. 343 vent prayer and to greater exertions to save our fellow men, w^lien we reflect tliat if tliey perisii tliey perisli after tlie most precious pro- visions liave been made for their salvation? Every possible means lias been taken to pre- vent tlieir death. There is balm in Gilead. There is a kind and an almighty physician there. We have the glorious Gospel of the blessed God offering pardon and peace to all men. The glad tidings of liberty are pro- claimed to the captive. Health is offered to the sick ; life to the dying. God so loved the world, that he gave his only begotton Son that whosoever believeth on him should not perish, but have everlasting life. Alas ! alas ! that men should be so stupid as to choose death when life is freely offered. Truly the ox know- eth its owner, and the ass his master's crib, but my 2:>eople, with God, doth not know, doth not consider. Alas ! that our fellow men should so shamefully reject the messages of eternal love, and obstinately refuse to believe on the Son of God. The consequences of this rejec- tion is that they shall not see life, but the 344 PwESPONSIBILITY FOIl THE Wrath of God abidetli on tliem. Fearfully great must be tlie depravity of that heart that perverts all the means of grace into the savor of death. How melancholy it is that immortal souls should die under the Gospel ! that they should abuse privileges so great and cut them- selves off from the mercy of God ! Yei'ily, it fehall be more tolerable for Tyre and Sidon, for Sodom and Gomorrah in the day of judgment than for the impenitent from Gospel lands. Third. I am persuaded that it is so cruel and naiTOW, pitiable and mean a plea — " that it is nothing to you that others are in danger" — that none of you intend seriously to put it forth in abatement of your responsibility. It is one of the noblest feelino-s known to the human breast, that, in some measui^e, we are our brother's keeper — that his happiness is in part in our hands, and ours in his. A generous sympathy that makes heart throb responsive to heart, as shoulder to shoulder we toil up the hill bearing the burdens of life, marks heaven's true nol)leman. If the people shall curse him who withholds corn in time of famine, shall SALVATION OF OUK FELLOW MEIsT. 345 not they curse liim wlio witliliolds tlie bread of life from tlie famishing, and the cup of the wine of consolation from the dying, the water of life from lips parched with the fever of sin, and " goodness from such as are bound in afflic- tion and iron V Yea, God himself will send a curse, the bitter curse of Meroz, on all who come not to the help of the Lord against the mighty. fourth. Are we all conscientiously engaged in trying to deliver those who are drawn unto death and are ready to })e slain 1 God alone can give a new heart to our fellow men ; but we know also that the effectual fervent j)rayer of the righteous availeth much. Our heavenly Father is , a God who heareth prayer. He is overcome by the importunities of his people. He is prevailed upon by the urgencies of the house of Israel. Are you then a husband or a Vvdfe, whose bosom companion knows not the Lord ? If so, cease not to pray for him or her, with that humble confidence that is given to the Christian as he comes to the mercy seat. And, if you are a parent having an ungodly, a 15* 346 EESPONSIBILITY FOR THE far wandered and prodigal cliild, then, like God's friend, Abraham, cry mightily unto Him, saying, O that Islimael miglit live hefore tliee ! or like the father in the Gospel, Lord, have mercy upon my son. Offer j)rayer in secret, in the house of God, and in the family. Of Abra- ham, God says to his commendation : " I know him that he will command his children, and his household after him." And of Job, it is said, he rose early in the morning and offered up ten offerings for his ten children ; because he feared they had sinned against God in their feasts with each other. He cannot love the souls of his family and fellow men much, who does not pray for them. Our subject addresses itself with peculiar force to men of influence and distinction, to heads of business houses, officers of the army and navy, commanders of ships, em^^loyers of others, and parents and teachers, editors and publishers, and all who from any cause are heads of the people, and leaders of others. It is a feai-ful thing to live; but to live under obligations to be useful — to live in such a city SALVATION OF OUE FELLOW MEl^. 347 as this — to live wliere you must be active in laying the foundations of tlie state and of tlie cliurch, whicli are to be a blessing or a curse for generations to come — to live and set an exam2:)le, and be responsible for such influences, is a fearful trust. Has God given you wealth, or genius, or position ? And are you using your influence to deliver those that are drawn unto death and ready to be slain ? Are you doing all you can to diifuse useful knowledge, and suppress intemperance and vice, and to ele- vate and purify public sentiment, to promote the right and prevent the wrong, and to bring your fellow men to a knowledge of the truth which is in order to salvation ? Are you doing as you would that others should do to you ? Young men and women are around you upon whom you can exert an influence for good — are you doing so ? Suppose your sons and daugh- ters away from home, situated as many of these are that we see among us, and what would you not give to secure for them the example and the prayers, and the counsels and the restraints of honest, sober, praying. Christian jpeople? 348 EESPO]!^SIBILITY FOE THE How mucli it would gladden your lieart to know tliat tlie people of God, in a distant city, were tliromng around your children tliere the softening and elevating influences of the family circle and of good libraries, and leading them to the house of prayer and praise ! Shall we not then do for the young peoj)le among us, as we would that the Christians of another city should do for our sons and daus^hters? As good citizens are we not bound to set a good example, and to deliver from death those that are drawn unto it by ignorance or intemper- ance, or evil companions, or any other wrong thing ? And let us remember that what we do must be done quickly, for we are swiftly pass- ing away. The season of harvest is short, and when it is past it is gone forever. I ask you, therefore, upon your conscience, and as you shall answer uj)on a dying bed, and at the judgment seat, are you doing all you can to deliver those that are drawn unto death and re^dy to be slain ? But let all impenitent men know, that, however shoi*t of duty the mem- bers of the church may fall, still the condem- SALVATION OF OUR FELLOW MEN. 349 nation of their unbelief will rest upon tlieir own lieacls. Every one must give an account to God for himself. There is zeal enouo^h in the church, and piety enough among its mem- bers, to be witnesses for God that reli2:ion is a reality. A thousand times has the conscience of the ungodly man told him of a truth, God is among these people. Ten thousand times has he felt the influence of their example, and the power of their prayers, Avhen he neither knew nor acknowledged it. Nor will it at all mitigate the doom of the impenitent to know that the church failed in much of its duty. They themselves knevf their duty, and did it not, and though there is censure upon the church, still tlieir condemnation is that they would not accept of Christ; they would not come to Him that they might have life. If some are deluded; if some are hypocrites; if some are unfeeling and rude : still the ques- tion for the impenitent soul at the judgment seat will not be concerning the conduct of Christian professors, but Vv^hat has he him- 350 SALVATION OF OUR FELLOW MEIS". self done in regard to tliis great salvation? May Almighty God, of his infinite mercy, grant you repentance unto life, through our Lord Jesus Christ, to whom be glory for ever and ever. Amen. XIII THE PIETY AND PATEIOTISM OF PRAYING FOE Holding with the Catecliism, and according to the interj^retation of ahiiost all commenta- tors, Jewish, Catholic and Protestant, ancient and modern, that the " Fifth Commandment re- quireth the preserving the honor and perform- ing the duties belonging to every one in their several places and relations, as superiors, infe- riors, or equals," we design this morning to dwell on the Christian duty and patriotism of praying for our civil riders. Our last discourse of this series was on the duty of children to parents. In the present we shall confine our- selves to one branch of the duty required of us * This chapter is abridged from a discourse preached as pastor iu 1843, in Now Orleans, to the First Presbyterian Church and congre- gation of that city, and published by them. It was then widely oil- ciliated, but is now out of print. Ouly a few sentences referring to passi::^" rnd local matters havo been ehanjed or omittod. 352 THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF toward our superiors. The precept tliat re- quires us to obey and honor our natural parents is so broad and comprehensive, spiritual and dynastic in its reach, that it requires us also to honor and obey our spiritual fathers, and our economical^ that is, our social and domestic fathers ; and to honor and obey our political fathers. Tlie duty whicli, however, we are now seeking to illustrate and enforce, is plainly taught by the apostles, and is specifically the duty oi pray i)ig for our civil riders. And we take our text for this subject from Paul : I exhort^ therefore, that, first of all, supplica- tions, prayers, intercessions, and giving of thanhs he made for all men : for Jcings and for all that arc in authority ; tluit tve may lead a quiet and peaceful life in cdl godliness and ho- nesty, For this is good and acceptahle in the sight of God our Saviour ; tvho ivill have all onen to he saved, and to come unto tlie hioivledge of the truth. — 1 Timothy, ii. 1-4. In these words of the great apostle to the Gentiles we have a duty enjoined and the REASONS GIVEN. PEAYIXG FOR OUli RULEKS. 353 T lie duty ^.v to offer player for all men^ for Idiujs and for cdl tliat are in autliority. The re- lation of subject and magistrate reseml)les very niuch in kind, if not in degree, the relation of cliild and parent. The very same reasons in l)ai't, which hind the chlhl to reverence and oljoy the parent, hind the suT)ject to ohey and pray for tlie magistrate. It is certainly true tliat the duty of praying for our rulers, implies the duty of praying for all properly constituted authorities in the church and the world — pa- rents, teachers, legislators, judges, officers of the army and the navy — and for all that are pos- ^ssed of wealtli, learning or talent, or any other consideration that gives them influence among their fellow men. The reason given for enforcing the . duty is very similar to^th^ reason given for obeying our parents — temporal as well as spiritual blessings are promised. First, that we may lead a quiet and peaceable life in all godliness and honesty. Secondly, for this is good and acceptable in the siglit of God our Saviour. To offer prayer 354 THE PIETY AND PATEIOTISM OF for constituted authorities is good in itself, be- cause it is useful to ourselves and to tlie public, and it is accej)table, accomj^anied witli a godly life, in tlie sight of God our Saviour. This is the highest of, all sanctions ; and what is well- pleasing to God, is the supreme good and hap- piness of man. Duty and interest are always united. A third reason is the encouragement offered : That God will have all men to he saved and to come unto tlie 'knowledge of tlie truth. That is, God is no respecter of persons :■ hut in every na- tion he tliat fearetli him and worheth righteous- ness^ is accepted ivitli him, ' Divine mercy is offered alike to the beggar and the prince, to the slave and to the master, to all without money and without price. And since salvation is offered to all, that some of all classes — eveiy one that repents and believes — may be saved; therefore, God wills that the Gospel should be preached to every creature, and that all men should be the subjects of our prayers. It is here assumed, there is a God who is the PRAYmG FOR OUE EULERS. 355 Supreme Governor of tlie universe ; that prayer is instrumental in procuring Ms blessings ; that our foreftithers were men of prayer. Their school-houses, judicial benches and legislative halls, and battle-fields, were consecrated with prayer. It is assumed, also, that what Cicero and Montesquieu call virtue, but what Bible- taught politicians call religion, is essential to the well-being of society. Keligion and virtue are, indeed, the main pillars and foundation of public peace and prosperity. If any doubt on this point, let them read, not the rantings of a bigot, nor the superfluities of a schoolman, nor the harangues of political clergymen, but the " Vindication of Natural Society," and " Eeflec- tions on tiie Revolution in France," by Edmund Burke, and doubt no more.*'^ And it is here assumed that civil government is necessary to the welfare of society ; that it is -the guardian of the public peace, and the secu- rity of every man's person, property and privi- * These papers are as remarkable for philosophical acumen, pro- found research, extensive and minute knowledge, as they are for 3loqueuce. See the Works of Edmund Burke. 35G THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF leges. It is by tlie exercise of civil mitliority tluit we are secured in our civil rights, pul)lic interests and domestic institutions. But my chief purpose is to insist upon the Cliristian duty of praying for civil magistrates. Whether phrenology or animal magnetism can account for it or not, it is certainly true that man is prone to go from one extreme to another. The safe medium he is rarely content to observe. Wlierever the Church and the State have been united, manifold evils have resulted, alike disastrous to civil liberty and ecclesiasti- cal purity. And on the other hand, where the Church has l)een happily freed from the tram- mels of State, tliere pious men seem to have ceased to feel sufficient interest . in tlie State, they have given ujd the management of politi- cal affairs too much to the ungodly, and the members of Christian churches have not looked for sound principles in the men seeking tlieir" suffrages, nor have they sought, as was their duty, the divine blessing upon their rulers. It is not agreeable to a pious man to forego the quietness of his home and the devotions of the PRAYIiS^G FOR OUE EULEIIS. 357 altar, and bear tlie lieat and burden of political strife, yet some slionld certainly be found of self- denial and grace enougli to engage in political life, and still preserve their Christian character above suspicion. From our practice, it would seem that when we are not compelled by law to pray for our rulers, then we consider our- selves released from all moral obligations to do so. But the very reverse should be the effect of such liberty on the heart of an enlightened, patriotic and pious citizen. As prayer must in its very nature be a free offering of the desires of the heart, to God ; so the more free we are from leccal coercion or restraint as to our reli- gious duties, the more fervent and frequent should our prayers be in behalf of our govern- ment. And yet it must be confessed, the ten- dency of things among us, has been to neglect this plain duty. As since the Kevolution w^c have not been required by law to pray for the king, and all the " Iloyal Family," so we have neglected to pray for the President and those in authority over us. But it is not true that this ne2:lect is because Americans are not as 358 THE PIETY AISTD PATRIOTISM OF lojal or patriotic as other nations. Nor is it true tliat our religion is defective in this mat- ter. Tlie error is not in our Protestant faith, but in our practice. The 2:>atriotism and lofty courage of our countrymen have been too often proved to need a word of defence. Nor should their piety be less conspicuous. I would not be misunderstood. I will yield to no man either in love for my country, or in zeal to keep the Church of Christ free from all alliance with party politics. It is very well known that I do not believe either in the divine rio;ht of kings, nor in the supremacy of the pope, the Czar, or any other potentate. I do not say, therefore, that any denomination of Christians should array themselves as a political party, and cast their votes for such candidates only as can pronounce their shibboleth. Nor do I say that our religious press and pulpits should en- gage in the political strife of the day. No; God forbid. All such things are, on every ac- count, to be deprecated. All we mean to say on this point is, that men of acknowledged ability, and of sound principles and pure morals PRAYING FOR OUR RULERS. 359 should be selected to administer tlie afFairs of State, and that all Christians are bound to obey, honor and pray for their civil magis- trates. THE DUTY OF PRAYING FOR OUR RULERS. 1. We believe neither in the supremacy of the po2:)e, nor in the divine right of kings ; but we do believe that the ])oicers tlutt he are or- dained of God. The heavens do rule. The Most Hi<2:h ruleth in the kin2:dom of men, and giveth it to whomsoever he will. Promotion Cometh neither from the east, nor from the west, nor from the south. But God is judge; he putteth down one, and setteth up another. A man's heart deviseth his way : but the Lord directeth his steps. The lot is cast into the lap ; but the whole disposing thereof is of the Lord. Dan. iv. 32 ; Fs. Ixxv. 6, 7 ; Prov. xvi. 9, 33. Statesmen and politicians may cast up crowns and play for kingdoms, and calculate upon their chances, and boast of their acumen and foresight, but Jehovah alone is King of kings, and the Most High alone is the supreme dis- 3 GO THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF poser of powers, princedoms and dominions." The fliglit of tlie tallest arcli angel before tlie eternal tlirone, and tlie immense sweep of com- ets and planets tlirougli the highest heavens are not more certainly directed by an Almighty hand, tlian are the evolutions of the sparrow. It is a hand almighty that crowns the angels with goodness and glory, and it is nothing less that paints the tulij) and the rose, and feeds the yonng ravens when they cry. It is the all- seeing eye that directs the torch of discovery wdiich philosophy bears round the globe, and kindles up on the outskirts of creation beacon lights for the advancement of coming genera- tions ; and it is nothing less that takes know- ledge of the wants of tlie j)ic)us. The Lord knoweth them that are his. He approveth of their w^ay. He nnmbereth the hairs of their head. His ear is ever open to their cry, his eye is ever upon them for good, and his hand is always stretched out for their relief. The 2^otvers that he are ordained of God, That is, pious rulers are raised up as God's ministers for good ; and wicked rulers are per- PRAYING FOR OUR RULERS. 361 mitted as a scourge and chastisement for their peoj)le's sins. In the world we often see the jDoisoned chalice emptied by those who drugged it for others. He that dlggetli a pit falletli into it, Haman's gallows for Mordecai was the instrument of his own execution. And often the very effort of our own evil thoughts — of the vaulting ambition of wicked men — "O'erleaps itself And fiiUs on t'other side " — — SO it was with Pharaoh, with Nebuchadnez- zar, and with Pilate, and with many others. Wicked men may be raised to power, and may propose to themselves mighty schemes by which to extend and concentrate their influ- ence, and they may labor most perseveringly for their accomplishment, and with the con- sciousness of success walk in the palace of their imagination and say : " Is not this great Baby- lon, that I have built for the house of the king- dom, by the might of my power, and for the honor of my majesty?" But there is an over- ruling Providence, just and good, that guides, 16 362 THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF nevertheless, the wheels of the universe, and brings harmony out of the seeming chaos of human affairs. Pharaoh and Nebuchadnezzar were as truly the servants of God, in accom- plishing his will, as Moses and Daniel. Surely the Lord maketh the wrath of man to praise him, and the remainder of wrath he restraineth. " There's a Divinity that shapes our ends, Rough hew them how we will." The civil power, then, is in some sort the representative of the divine government. Our rulers are the image of the Divine Kuler. Mao;istrates are God's officers. To render them that respect and homage which is well pleasing in his sight, is to acknowledge his providence. It is an act of religious worship. It is an act of homage to God from whom all power ema- nates. It is an act of adoration. It is then a duty as well as a privilege to offer thanksgiving to Almighty God for our laws, liberties and institutions, and most worthy praise to his holy name for the warriors and statesmen, patriot?; and pious men that he has raised up for us, and PRAYIiS-G FOR OUE EULERS. 363 to pray fervently for our rulers — for their per- sonal welfare and tlie happiness of tlieir fami- lies, and for the divine blessing to rest upon their official labors. 2. To ]}raij for our rulers is cm act o^ true patriotism. As it is our duty to reverence and o])ey them, so it is our duty to pray for them. No external form of respect can so fully demon- strate our affection for them, as the pouring out of the desires of our heart before the Lord for their welfare. Nothins; can be a strong-er aro^u- ment of the esteem and consideration in which we hold them than the practice of praying for them. It is a j)ractice without fee or emolu- ment. It is difficult to conceive of any act so purely free from sinister motives, as the making of intercessions to Almighty God for our rulers.* * " A foe to God was ne'er a friend to man." He that feareth not God regardeth not man. " As he who is not loyal to the Icing, can never well obey his officers, so he that subjecteth not his soul to the original power of his Creator, can never well obey the derivative power of earthly governors." " Magistrates are as truly God's offi- cers as preachers; and, therefore, as he that heareth preachers, hcareth him, so he that obeyeth rulers obeyeth him." See much more on this point, in Baxter's Works, London, 1830, vol vi. pp. 37, 88, et seq. 364 THE PIETY AT^D PATRIOTISM OF Nor is it surprising that even heathen princes should have required the prayers of their sub- jects in their behalf. Thus, in Ezra, we find a decree of the king of Persia, charging his offi- cers to furnish the Jewish elders with sacrifices — all " that which they have need of, both young bullocks and rams, and lambs for the burnt offerings of the God of heaven ; wheat, salt, wine and oil, according to the appointment of the priests which are at Jerusalem, let it be given them day by day without fail : that they may offer sacrifices of sweet savors unto the God of heaven, and pray for the life of the king and of his sons." Ezra vi. 9, 10. And so, also, Pliny informs us concerning the Koman emperors, even in tlieir heathenish state. "We have," says he, "been wont to make vows for the eternity of the empire, and for the welfare of the citizens, yea, for the wel- fare of the princes, and in their welfare for the eternity of the empire." * * " Nuncuparc vota et pro aeternitate imperii, et pro salute civiura, imo pro salute principium, ac propter illos pro aeternitate imperii sole- bamus." — PL Pancg. PPwAYIiS^G FOR OUR RULERS. 365 3. Pious rulers^ and all lolio acknowledge the Supreme Government of God., desire an interest in the prayers of tlieir peopjle. And even those who seem not to feel tlieir dependence upon the Sovereign Ruler of the universe, are pleased to have the people pray for them, for it is an act of loyalty that few will perform who are not sincere. It is a decent testimony of respect toward them, and greatly tends to establish their authority and secure obedience to their commands. How can we sincerely honor and reverence our rulers, if we have no heart to offer up prayers for them to him who has re- quired us to pray for all men, especially for rulers and all that are in authority ? It is the divine command, that "every soul be subject unto the higher powers, not only for wrath, but also for conscience' sake. For, for this cause pay ye tribute also : for they are God's minis- ters attending continually uj)on this very thing. Kender, therefore, to all their dues ; tribute to whom tribute is due, custom to whom custom, fear to whom fear, honor to whom honor." It is, then, an act of patriotism, and of gratitude 366 THE PIETY AND PATEIOTISM OF and obedience to God, and of justice and cliari ty toward our rulers to pray for tliem. How can we be faithful to our rulers, if we are . not obedient " to tlie Most High, by whom princes rule and judges decree justice ?" If we sincerely and habitually pray for our country, we shall daily grow in attachment to it, and if we daily remember our rulers in our devotions we shall not fail to love and obey them. To neglect this duty is to be wanting in patriotism, as well as in obedience to the divine commandments. The best Christian is the best patriot, the most faithful subject, and the bravest warrior. A Christian is truly " the highest style of a man." I exhort that — -pimyer he made for all men^ for Icings and for all that are in authority^ that we may lead a quiet and peaceaUe life in all godliness and honesty. 4. The jjiety and ijatriotism of jpraying for our riders are seen in the practice of the Church of God in all ages. The apostle's command in the text is positive. And it has been the prac- tice of the pious in all past ages, and in all PRAYINa FOR OUR RULERS. 367 countries to hold tlieir civil rulers in esteem and to pray for tliem. It is a duty tauglit in tlie Bible, both by precept and example. God commanded tlie people by Lis propliet, wlien tlie Jews were conquered by tlie king of Baby- lon, and carried away captives, " Seek tke peace of the city wliitlier I liave caused you to be carried away captives, and pray unto tlie Lord for it ; for in the peace thereof shall ye have peace." The Scriptures abound in instances of the efficacy of prayer, both in regard to pub- lic and private blessings. Thus Abraham's prayer healed Abimelech and his family of bar- renness ; the prayers of Moses quenched the fire, and cured the bitings of the hery serpents, and so of the prayers of Joshua, of Hannah, of Elijah, of Elisha, and of others. The prayers of Asa discomfited a million of Arabians, and those of Jehoshaphat destroyed a numerous army of his enemies by his own hands, and those of Hezekiah brouccht down an anccel from heaven to cut off the Assyrians, and those of Manasseh restored him to his kingdom, and those of Esther saved her people from the brink 368 THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF of ruin, and tliose of Nehemiali inclined a pagan king's heart to favor liis pious designs, and tliose of Daniel obtained for liim visions, and tlie interpretation of dreams. Noah, Job and Samuel, and a liost of saints have been power- ful through much prayer, and as princes have prevailed with God. "All things," says the blessed Saviour, "whatsoever we shall ask in prayer, believing, we shall receive — He that asketh receiveth, and he that seeketh iindeth, and to him that knocketh it shall be opened." "As the good bishop," says Dr. Barrow, "ob- serving St. Austin's mother, with what con- stancy and passionateness she did pray for her son, being then engaged in ways of error and vanity, did encourage her, saying : It is imfpos- sible that the -swi o-^ these devotions should perish: so may we hopefully presume, and encourage ourselves, that a prince will not miscarry, for whose welfare many good people do earnestly solicit ; jFieri non potest ut princeps istarum lacrymarum pereatP * * Dr. Barrow's Works, vol. i., serna. x., p. 95. Et sic etiam " Si Stephanas non orassct ecclesia Paulam non habuisset." PEAYIJSTG FOE OUR RULERS. 369 It is a remarkable saying of a Jewisli master, " Pray for the happiness of a kingdom or gov- ernment ; for if it were not for tlie fear of tliat, men would devour one another alive." And Josephus tells us, that " when the Jews were made subject to the Etonians (though it was by conquest) twice a day they offered u^) sacrifices for the life and safety of the emperor." The apostle in the text directs that " first of all sup- plications, prayers, intercessions, and giving of thanks, be made for all men : for kings, and for all that are in authority." Hei^e is a posi- tive command. The Apostolic Constitutions, a very old work, though not the work of the apostles themselves, speaks of the prayers of Church, on communion occasions, for rulers. Tertullian assures us the "ancient Christians always prayed for all the emperors, that God would grant them long life, a secure reign, a safe fiimily, valiant armies, a faithful senate, a loyal people, a quiet world, and whatever they as men, or as emperors, could wish. This they did," says he, " even for their persecutors, and 16* 370 THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF often even in the pangs of tlie most cruel suf- ferino; and death." Cliiysostom says of the Christians of his time : " That all communicants did know how every day, both at even and morning, to make supplications for all the world, and for the em- peror, and for all that are in authority." ^ Lactantius saith to Constantine, "We with daily prayers do su]3plicate God, that he would iirst of all keej^ thee, whom he hath willed to be the keeper of things ; then that he would inspire into thee a will whereby thou mayst ever persevere in the love of God's name; which is salutary to all, both to thee for thy ha23piness, and to us for our quiet," f So Cyprian : " We pray to God, not oiily foi ourselves, but for all mankind, and particularly for the erhperors." And Origen : " We pray for kings and rulers, that, with their royal authority, they may be found possessing a wise and prudent mind." * For the originals of Tertullian and Chrysostotn, see Dr. Barrow's Works, vol. i. p. 91. f Lactant. vii. 26. rr.ATTXG FOR OUR RULERS. 3^1 So, also, the ancient liturgies contain clivers prayers for tlie emperors. And the confessions of faith and directories for j^ublic worshi23 of all Protestant churches, recognize due obedience to magistrates and the duty of praying for them. " We are to pray for the whole Church of Christ upon earth, for magistrates^ and minis- ters, for ourselves, our brethren, yea, our ene- mies, and for all sorts of men living, or that shall live hereafter ; but not for the dead, nor for those that are known to have sinned the sin unto death." Larger Cat. ans, ^6> 183 qices.^ and also the ans. to the 127 qites.^ 5. It is but common Christian charity to pray for our rulers, Jirst, l3ecause they are but men — our fellow men, and, secondly^ they are more in need of our prayers than common men. " There are no men," says the late Dr. A. Alex- ander, "among us, who would be rendered more useful by Christian jiiety than those who are intrusted with power and official influence. * See Vindications of Protestants in tlie point of obedience, etc. By Pet<>r Du Moulin, D.D. An excellent work. 372 THE PIETY ATnTD PATRIOTISM OF They are exalted above tlieir fellow citizens, and should be exemplary in proportion to their elevation. Those who are delegated by the people to make laws for the protection of life, property and liberty, have an authority given them which is accompanied with a fearful re- sponsibility. So few who engage in political concerns are governed by a regard to the glory of God, and the best interests of men, that the requiring that such would-be pious men, sounds strangely, and will appear unto many a novel- ty. That ministers of the Gospel, and other chief officers, should be religious men, all will admit, but that legislators and lawyers should be such, seems not to be evident. But there is no class of men in society to whom piety is more neces- saiy and important than civil rulers. They need this ennobling principle to enable them steadily to pursue those objects which are con- nected with the public welfare." There are some peoj)le who seem to think riches and titles, and offices of honor and trust, are vices of themselves, and that poverty and obscurity are much the same thing as godliness. PRAYING FOE OUR RULERS. 373 They presume on tlie goodness of God to give them eternal life in the world to come, simply because they have evil things here. They per- suade themselves that all men abo^^e them are like the rich man in the Gospel, w^ho fared sumptuously every day and was clothed in fine linen, hut who died, and lifted up his eyes in hell, being in torment; and that they them- selves are like Lazarus. As though God would send men to perdition merely because they were rich, and possessed of influence and stand- ing among their fellow men, and save the poor and wretched merely for being poor. This class of individuals consider themselves as the supporters of the rich, whom they look upon as the caterpillars of society. To use their own style, the rich, or those intrusted with wealth and honors, live upon their labors, like drones in a hive ; and salaried officers, whether in the state or the university, or on the bench, they consider as mice and vermin, that eat the honey which they, the poor laboring bees, have long been gathering. Such envious — I should have Baid wicked — thoughts are as far from truth, 374 THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF from just views of society and from the princi- ples of tlie Bible, as they are evidence of a mean and contracted spirit. These very j^er- sons, by indulging sucli jealousies, sliow that the grapes are sour. They would act on the dog- in-the-manger principle if they could. They would themselves be what they suppose the rich and the great to be, if they knew how to attain such a condition. The most domineering and haughty are usually such as have been, by some freak of fortune, raised to wealth and' j)ower from humble circumstances. The most cruel masters are such as have once been slaves, but are now set over their quondam felloAV-ser- vants. The most haughty aristocrats — those that make the loudest pretensions — are often the merest upstarts. Families of the greatest pride are not . unfrequently such as have once stood exceedingly low on the social scale. I am not objecting to every one improving his condition, if he do it honestly. I am not o^- posed to the apj)rentice becoming master, and the steward owner. I only mention these cases to show that the prejudice and ill will which PEAYING FOR OUR RULERS. 375 tlie laboring classes are too prone to indulge against the rich, the learned, or the professional classes of society, are unjust, for there is no royal road to knowledge and power. The door is open to all. The highest gift of the freest nation on the globe may be obtained by the poorest freeborn man-child of America. These prejudices too, I am sorry to say, are proof of as much depravity in the laboring people, not as may actually exist among office-holders and the learned professions, but as they are sup- posed to possess. Those who are most apt to complain know not their own hearts. Is tliy servant a dog that lie should do this thing? And yet, says an old writer, 'Hhe dog did do that very thing." The bird flies high, but the arrow may bring him down ; the fish swims deej), but the hook can bring it up : but the human heart, who can comprehend ? It is an exceeding deep, who can find it out ? The Bible teaches us that riches and worldly consideration are not absolutely inconsistent with piety ; Init that it is more difficult for a man to be pious, who is encumbered with the 876 THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF possessions and honors of this world. This is perfectly obvious. Many of the pious men, however, named in the Bible, as Abraham and Lot, Job and David, were men of great wealth. Many kings and politicians, and lawyers and physicians, and philosophers and scholars, have been eminently pious men Such instances may be rare, but they are by no means impossible. Poverty is not always accompanied with godli- ness, but rather the reverse. Godliness loitli contentment is great gain. Kags and filth and sin, are much oftener found on the same j)erson, than that a rio^hteous man should be found begging bread. A man is not to lose his soul because he has estates, but for placing his affec- tions upon them, and the neglect of his duty toward God and his fellow men. Nor is a man to be saved, because he is as poor as Lazarus, but because he is pious in his poverty. The Gospel knows no distinction of 2:)ersons accord- ing to the flesh. All are concluded under sin. The same terms are propounded to all, whether rich or poor : namely, repentance toward God, and faith in the Lord Jesus Christ. He that PEAYING FOE OUE EULERS. 377 believetli shall be saved, and lie tliat believetli not shall be damned. And as it is in grace, so it is in society. We are all members one of another. AVe are all parts of the same great web. We all have need of one another. I have need of you, and you have need of me. The happiness of each one is included in the well-doing of every one. Every one is his brother's keeper. In this great family there is, however, a great diversity of gifts and offices. One is the head to do the thinking^ and his thinhing is really as onuch to the productive industry of tlie country^ as the plougliing of the farmer. Another is tlie hand to do the iDorMng, and his ivorlcing is as essen- tial to the political and morcd ivell-heing of society as is the thinMng of the other. Arid they are both equal. Our rulers, then, are doubly entitled to our daily intercessions at the throne of heavenly grace. They are lone of our hone and flesh of our flesh. They are our creatures. They are of us, l)ut they are al30ve us. Being of us, they are but men, fallible like ourselves. Being 378 THE PIETY AITD PATEIOTISM OF above us, tliey are by that very elevation tlie more in need of our eliarity and prayers. First. Their duties are ^yeciilicuiy difficult. The affiiirs which they are called upon to guide and settle are of great weight and importance, involving: in their decisions the well-beino- of hundreds and thousands and millions of their fellow men. Measures of great consequence have to be examined, discussed, proposed, adopted. And even when there is much wis- dom and ability and courage, and the 23urest intentions, it is not always an easy matter to hear a cause upon its true merits, and render a righteous decision. The burdens of office to a high-minded and virtuous man are never light. They that are great among their fellow men, are servants of all. Those possessed of estates and honors, talents and influence, are also possessed of vast entailed responsibilities. Nor can they escape from responsibility. It is as inseparable from them as their identity, and as lasting as tlieir immortality. He tliat increaseth hioiv- ledge^ increasetli sorroiv. Much more does he increase his cares and labors that increaseth his PRAYIKG FOR OUR RULERS. 379 riclies and lieapetli up lionors, and runnetli after and gainetli tlie liomage of Lis fellow men. Our rulers are more to be pitied, to be loved and. prayed for, than to be envied. " The world continually doth assault them with all its advantages ; with all its baits of pleasure, with all its enticements to pride and vanity, to oppression and injustice, to sloth, to luxury, to exorbitant self-will and self-conceit, to every sort of vicious 23ractice. Their eminency of state, their affluence of wealth, their uncontrol- lable power, their exemption from common con- straints, their continual distractions and encum- brances by varieties of care and business, their multitude of obsequious followers, and scarcity of fLiithful friends to advise or reprove them, their having no obstacles before them to check their wills, to cross their humors, to curb their lusts and passions, are so piany dangerous snares unto them ; wherefore they do need plentiful measures of grace, and mighty assistance from God, to preserve them from the worst errors and sins; into, which, otherwise, 'tis almost a miracle if the}^ are not plunged." " All princes 380 TlIE PIETY AND PATEIOTISM' OF Laving many avocations and temptations hind- ering tliem to j)ray enongli for themselves, do need supplemental aid from the devotions of others."— J7;'. Barroio. Second. They are exposed to peculiar dangers. As their field of labor is enlarged, so are the facilities for the gratification of appetite and passion increased, and the sources of temptation multiplied. And just as they are elevated above their fellow men and above their former condition in society, they are apt to forget their responsibility. Sometimes the height makes them dizzy. Sometimes even a trip to Wash- ington makes our representatives forget their constituents and their kindred. Sometimes a voyage to Europe absolutely turns the heads of . simple republicans. They come home full of lords and ladies, fetes and routs, and stars and ribbons and buttons, all such anti- American trumpery. Now their own dear native land grows nothing worthy of them. Their dress and china must be jmrchased in London or Paris. Alas, poor human nature ! It is not every one of us that can bear elevation. He PPvAYIXG FOR OUK RULERS. 381 that can smm in liis fat Tier's mill-pond, may be carried down with violence by the muddy tur- bulence of the great river. It is an ol:)servation of old Humphrey, that " like paper kites in the air, we do pretty w^ell while checked with a strong string; but cut the string, and let us have our own way, and, like the poor kite, ^ve come tumbling down into the mire." He that does very well with a thousand, may be utterly ruined by a hundred thousand. " It is harder," says some one, " for that bird to iiy, that hath many pound weights tied to keep her down, than that which hath but a straw to carry to her nest. It is harder mountino; heavenwards ■with, lordships and kingdoms, than with less impediments." Even those that can bear an elevation to power are under temptations to make their license for doing whatsoever they vfill. Whereas, in fact, the greater power and authority any one hath, the less liberty he hath to do anything that is wrong or of questionable integrity.* For the great(u^ the power and authority that God hath invested * In maxima quaquc fortuna minimum liccrc. — Cicero. 382 THE PEETY AND PATEIOTISM OF any man witli, tlie greater are liis obligations to be good liimself, and to do good to Ms fellow men, because the greater is liis influence and means to do good to others. The more influence a man's example has, the greater are' his obligations to set a good one. What a delightful sight would it be to see those who are eminent in -piacQ and power contin- ually setting an example of godliness ! What would it not do for the moral character of our city, if all our authorities would upon conscience respect the Lord's day and the in- stitutions of the Bible? It will be admitted that those who are most worthy of our charities, are the proper objects of benevolence, and that it is our duty to pray for all men, then especially for our rulers, for they are men ; and they are burdened with peculiar labors and trials, and exposed to pe- culiar dangers. They are like sentinels placed ii2)on the top of a barren mountain, exposed to the merciless 23eltings of every storm for our safety, while we dwell quietly in the flowery vale below. The most fortunate of PRAYIXG FOR OUR RULERS. 883 them liave open enemies and insidious foes. They are surrounded l)y the jealous and the narrow-minded, or by disappointed office-seek- ers. Beset by the offieiojis servility or para- sites of flatterers, who soothe them in their faults, and humor them in their passions, and iire up their corrupt and vicious inclinations, whenever there is a possibility of advancing their own selfish designs. Exposed to violence and treachery, the cares of office, and tempta- tions of place and power, who are so much in need of our prayers as our rulers ? Has not the ablest of them need to pray with Solomon : " Give thy servant an understanding heart, to judge thy people, that I may discern between good and bad ; for who is able to judge this so great a people." It is not hj mere human wisdom and strength that man prevails. The race is not to the swift, nor the battle to the strono^. Salvation is of the Lord. " The^e is," says the psalmist, " no king saved by the multitude of an host." Except the Lord keepeth the city, the watchmen w^ake but in vain. Except the Lord preserve our laws and 384 THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF liberty and institutions, our army and navy, patriotic and brave as tliey are, will be but as chaff before tlie tempest. Third. To ]3ray for our rulers is then a duty to ourselves and our children, as well as to them and to the public. The good of the com- monwealth is greatly aifected by the principles and character of its rulers. Where the people are the sovereign, rulers are the creatures of their will. The nation lives and has its breathing in its rulers. In oriental style a ruler is compared to a tall ce- dar, whose shadow is for protection and com- fort ; and his death is likened to its fall, that shakes the earth. That is, the death of a wise and virtuous ruler is a great public calamity. It is an interrupting of the regular administra- tion of the affairs of state. It is a loss to the public of precious experience, well-tried abili- ties, patiently acquired confidence, and the con- sequent peril of putting public interest into hands untried. Hence King David is called the light of Israel^ and hence the people once said to him out of the overflowincc of their PRAYING FOR OUR RULERS. o05 patriotic hearts, Thou art loortli more tlian ten tJiousaiid of us. And so, also, ISTeliemiali and Daniel eacli comj)limented liis sovereign by saying, hing live forever^ which is trans- lated in England into God save the Queen. As when the sun shines brightly the day is clear; as the ship is in good condition when out in open sea, with a good pilot, and sails crowded mth prosperous breezes hastening to- ward the destined port, so the people are hap- py and prosperous when wise and good men guide the affairs of state. But woe to the land whose ruler is a child — weak, wayward, fickle. The character and deeds of our rulers are inseparable from our national honor and pros- perity. Our chief magistrate cannot say, I am tlie State; still, from the highest office in the na- tion's gift to the lowest, there is an inseparable connection between the national glory and the character of its rulers. The rulers and their electors are members of the same body. Their fortunes mutually reflect each other. The ex- ample, opinions and manners of men in office 17 386 THE PIETY AKD PATRIOTISM OF are the models of our young men who aspire to take their places. It is, therefore, of the most vital importance that they be pure-minded, upright men — men of good morals and sound principles. The public welfare is essentially connected with the character and well-doing ot rulers. The honor and prosperity of rulers should be the glory of the people. They are inseparably united. The people cannot live happily if theu' rulers are in peril. They mutually par- take of each other's fortunes. They make but one civil and political body, and what part soever of it suffers, all the other parts sympa- thize. Thus Tertullian"^ says, speaking to Gentile magistrates, "We pray for you, because with you the empire is shaken: and the other mem- bers of it being shaken, assuredly even we, how far soever we may be thought removed from the calamity, are found in some place of the fall." The very same consideration the apostle introduces, as the reason why we should pray . . i lUIV; .: • Tertul. ApoL, «. &2. PRAYING FOR OUR RULERS. 387 for our rulers, " I exhort you to make prayer for kings — that we may lead a quiet and peace- able life in all godliness and honesty." The connection between the moral character and prosperous administration of rulers and the happiness of the people is obvious. 1. From their ivfluence tipon the people. Their example has great influence. "A king sitting in the throne of judgment scattereth away all evil with his eyes." " His power is the shield of innocence, the fence of right, the shelter of weajvuess and simplicity against vio- lence and frauds. His very look is sufficient to advance goodness and suppress wickedness." The examj)le of a pious man in power is a liv- ing law to the people, and does more than ten thousand statutes in precept alone, to mould and fashion public sentiment. The political opinions, the moral sentiments and the man- ners of civil magistrates are caught up, imitated and followed. If they are wise and good, sin is rebuked and the righteous are encouraged. If they are duellists and gamblers, if they are profane, Sabbath-breakers, neglecters of reli- 388 THE PIETY AI^D EATEIOTISM OF gion, licentious and infidel in their sentiments, and given to mucli strong drink, the pious mourn, and the wicked are emboldened in their iniquities. 2. The influence of rulers iifon the people is obvious from the dose connection there is hetvjeen their moral character and the happiness of the 'people. Righteousness exalteth a nation and estahlish- eth the throne — when it goeth well with the righteous the city rejoicetli, for hy the Messing 0^ the upright the city is exalted. -Ten righteous men would have saved Sodom. For the elect's sake, our Saviour informs us, the days of ven- geance were shortened. The effectual fervent prayer of a righteous man availeth much. It is a munition of rocks for national defence. Now, since the Scriptures saj^ so much of the piety of private persons, then how much more important is the example of pious rulers. Is it not said in the Bible that God, for David's sake, preserved Judah from destruction, even in the days of Hezekiah, when the king of Assyria invaded the land ? God by the mouth PEAYING FOR OUR RULERS. 389 of Isaiali declared: I will defend the city of Jerusalem^ for mine own sake^ and for my ser- vant David'' s salce. Wlio can tell liow often God has spared our guilty land for liis servant Washington's sake, and for tlie sake of the Hu- guenot and Pilgrim Fathers, whom he win- nowed out from Europe, and brought over to this then wilderness continent, to give it the Gospel, and to make it blossom and bloom as the garden of the Lord. There are numerous instances in the Holy Scriptures which teach us that there is a moral connection of merit and guilt between rulers and their people. Mutually each is rewarded for the virtues, or punished for the vices of the other. For the people's sin sometimes misfor- tunes fall upon their ruler, and he is removed from them, or he brings upon them some ca- lamity. Thus, Samuel said to the Israelites : If ye do wickedly^ ye sliall he consumed^ hotli ye and your hing. And so, on the other hand, for the sins of rulers, the jDeople are afflicted. Thus Solomon's iniquities brought evil to all Israel. And so also in the case of David, when' 390 THE PIETY AKD PATEIOTISM OF he numbered the people ; and of Aaron, when he made the golden calf, and so also in regard to the sins of Saul and Jeroboam. And of Manasseh, it is said, notivithstcmding all the good deeds of JosiaJi^ still the Lord turned not from the fierceness of his great wratli^ whereioith his anger was hindled against Jitdah^ hecause of all the provocations wherevnth Manasseh provolced him. And Hezekiah rendered not again according to the henefit done unto him ; for his heart was lifted up ; therefore there ivas wrath upon him^ and upon Judah and Jeru- salem, We are too apt to impute all our misfortunes to our rulers, and take all our prosperity to ourselves. We often blame the administration of affairs, when we are ourselves chiefly in fault. Where, as happily with us, the people elect their own rulers, there the people are more to blame than the rulers. If they place over themselves a weak and wicked man, they become partakers in all his evil deeds. If they give power into the hands of a wicked man, ' they sin themselves, and they cause him to sin, PRAYING FOR OUR RULERS. 391 and partake in all his sins. Where there is such sovereignty, there is a fearful responsi- bility. 3. It is our duty to do good to all men as we have opportunity — and to pray for all men; and, therefore, to do good to, and to pray for our rulers, for they are not stocks, nor stones, nor angels ; but men — our fellow men, and the more in need of our prayers, as their labors and cares are increased. And to pray for our rulers is the cheapest, and yet the most effectual way of doing them good. However rich a man may be, he cannot dispense alms to every one ; but he may enlarge his heart in prayer for the whole human race. "Our prayers can reach the utmost ends of the earth ; and by them our charity may embrace all the world." By prayer the widow and the orphan may become bene- factors to the rich, and the humblest citizen heap the choicest gifts upon the civil magis- trate. Since the breath of all men is in the hands of him who fashioneth and turneth their hearts whithersoever he will, it is our duty and privi- 392 THE PIETY AND PATRIOTISM OF lege to pray to God to direct our rulers in tlie right way, and incline tlieir hearts to wliat is well pleasing in his sight — that they may so administer justice with mercy as to secure peace of conscience and the approbation of the Judge of all — that in health and prosperity they may long live; and, finally, after this life, attain everlasting joy and felicity where all the pious shall reign as kings forever, through our Lord Jesus Christ. Amen. It is then a plain duty enjoined upon all Christians to pray for the civil magistrate un- der whom they live. The character of the mao-istrate and the manner of reachinof the hisfh place of authority has nothing to do with the Christian duty of praying for him. It were difficult in the whole range of histoiy to find majristrates more wicked and cruel than those actually in power, when the apostles wrote so plainly upon the duty of Christians to obey tlie powers that Z»^,and to pray for those in authori- ty. Historically also we have found it to be the teaching of the Church of Christ from its foundation, that Christians should pray for PRAYINa FOR OUR RULERS. 393 their rulers. And we do seriously call in ques- tion botli tlie Christianity and the patriotism of any man that does not habitually pray for his country and its rulers. It is the divinely appointed economy that we should use means to obtain the divine blessing. And one of those means is prayer. "Without prayer to God, we have no right to expect the divine blessing either upon ourselves or our country. If we call upon God, he has promised to hear us. But the nation or people that lolll not serve liim^ lie will destroy. The hand of the Lord is tvpon all them for good that seek him^ hut his power and his ivratli is against tliem that for- sake him. Them that honor me^ saith God^ I will honor^ and they that despise me, shall he lightly esteemed. The man that lives without prayer lives in continual sin against his maker. And if he continue pray erl ess, he cannot go to heaven. And sui-ely, if it is a Christian duty for all men to pray for their rulers, it is the duty of civil magistrates to pray for themselves and for the people. Parents and teachers esteem it a privi- 17* 894 PEAYIISTG rOPw OUR EULERS. lege to pray for tliose committed to tlieir care, Mucli more sliould civil magistrates pray for themselves and for those over whom they exer- cise authority. And loliosoGver shall call on tlie name of the Lord shall he saved. XIV. CHEISTIAN SOLDIERS. Colonel Gardiner — Captain Vicars — Field- Marshal Suivari 'ow — Gene) ^al Haveloch — General Jackson,^ We allude again to Col. Gardiner, not to give any detailed account of his life. This is unne- cessary, seeing that the history of his life and Christian character has long been familiar to the reading world. We would, however, have * The author does not profess, of course, to give anything like an exhaustive notice of these distinguished warriors, nor to exclude many others from the right of being enrolled in a similar place in Hie Church of the Army. He has introduced these rather than others, because he was better acquainted with their history, and also because their characters seemed to him to be most fit illustrations of the main points in hand. The religious opinions of our own great Wash'ngtun are too well known to need a remark. Indeed, it is be- lieved that all our Great Captains are and have been believers in Christianity, and most of them communing members in the Church of Christ. 396 CHRISTIAN SOLDIERS. it distinctly remembered, tliat lie was as well known for his love of country and for valor, tested in many a battle-field, as be was for piety. He was as brave and skilful in defend- ing virtue against vice, and the truth of God against infidelity, as he was in leading his men into the thickest of the fight. During his earlier years, he often expressed a wish that it might be God's will for him to sacrifice his life in de- fence of religion and of the liberties of his coun- try. This prayer was answered. The last re- cord we have of him, ^vi'itten by himself, is in the following terms : " The enemy are advanc- ing ; but I trust in the Almighty God, who do- eth whatsoever he pleases in the armies of hea- ven, and among the inhabitants of the earth. I have one life to sacrifice to my country's safety, and I shall not spare it." This was only the day before he fell beneath the blow of a broadsword in the battle of Preston Pans. The sublimest paii: of his life, however, was his example of godliness amid the profaneness and dissipation of the camp. Of Captain Vicars we have also spoken, and while we do not think CHRISTIAN SOLDIEES. 397 his memoirs just the kind of a record that might do the most good, we do greatly admire the man as a Christian soldier. His lofty cour- age, self-denial, and diligence in doing good are ever to be remembered. He found time to pray and read the Bible, to visit the sick, attend meetings for j)rayer, and to cheer up his men amid the hardships and labors and perils of the camp as well as of the battle. We find him writing thus to his sister : " Be assured you will feel far happier in this world, even, by making religion your chief pursuit and study, than by all the pleasures and gaieties which your young heart may now be longing after. I tell you candidly and seriously, that I would willingly part witli every earthly pleasure for life^ for one hour's communion with Jesus every day !" And again : " Oh, that the Lord God would come among us with a high hand and with a stretched out arm; that he would, by the mighty power of the Holy Ghost, change and soften the hard hearts of those who despise tlie riches of his grace, and who make a mock of sin while standino^ on tlie verp^e of ete^-nitv : 398 CHRISTIAN SOLDIERS. tliat lie would plant tlie rose of Sliaron in all its freshness and fulness in tlie ground of every troubled, sin-laden lieart." Sucli was the heart of the man, who gave his own blankets to his soldiers, and slept on leaves, and, like Jacob, had a stone for his j)illow. Such was the Christian soldier, who roused his little band of two hundred in the dead of night to meet the attack of two thousand Russians in the trenches, by shouting: "Now, 97th, up and charge!" He himself led the way, and when a bayonet wound drew the blood copiously from his breast, his voice rose higher still, as he cried : "Men of the 97th, follow me !" as he leaped the parapet and charged the enemy. For a moment the moonbeams fell on his flashing sword as he waved it for the last time and gave his dying cheer to his men : " This way, 97th !" And he fell amidst his foes, but fell in the arms of victory. FIELD-MARSHAL SUWARROW. This officer is the greatest general Russia ever produced, and the most extraordinary man CHRISTIAN SOLDIERS. 399 of his time. He combined tlie highest talents for war with the most extraordinary devotion. He had a superstitious influence over the minds of his soldiers. His deeds in arms are almost fabulous, and his manner of life singular. He had a philosophical contempt for dress, and miQ:ht often have been seen drillins: his men in his shirt sleeves. By exercise, cold baths, and frugal diet, which he always shared with the soldiers, he kept himself, even to old age, in a vigorous state of health. He was a rare exam- ple of temperance. He scrupulously kept all the fasts of the Grreek Church. War and its duties w^ere the whole occupation and diversion of his life. He insj)ired his soldiers with a courage that made them invincible, no matter how great the numbers or adverse the circum- stances. He was a man of incorruptible hon- esty, immovable in his purposes, and inviolable in his promises. As he shared all the hard- ships and perils of his soldiers, so they never refused to follow him. He could march them fartlier, carry them through greater fatigue, and make them victors over greater odds, than any 400 CHRISTIAN SOLDIERS. man in Europe. Devoutly religious, he would often stop liis soldiers on tlieir marcli for prayer or exhortation, and especially on Sundays, if opportunity offered, deliver tliem a lecture. He also obliged his captains to pray aloud be- fore their companies, and abused those foreign officers who were not acquainted with the Rus- sian prayers. To the love of his country he sa- crificed every other sentiment, and consecrated w^ithout reserve all the faculties of his nature. So unbounded was the confidence of his soldiers in his sanctity and capacity to lead them, that they regarded him as the man chosen and sent by the Almighty to lead them to victory. Rus- sian soldiers under him never surrendered, though surrounded by the enemy. They died embracing the image of their saints, which was attached as an amulet to their necks, but never surrendered. Of Suwarrow himself it was said, he "was never cold, afraid, nor defeated." For this estimate of this great field-marshal of Eussia, we have relied mainly on Fowler's " Lives of the Sovereigns of Russia." CHEISTIAI^ SOLDIEES. 401 GENERAL HAVELOCK. Among tlie Indian heroes of tlie Britisli army, wliere sliall we find a name more honored than that of Havelock, and where shall we find a character more like the Puritan, God-fearino* ironsides of Cromwell ? A late review, by no means fond of evangelical views, says of him : "His relio^ion was no outward virtue, but a deep, living, all pervading principle, which was rooted in his very being, and tinged his whole character. He was one no more ashamed of pra3dng than of fighting; but would sing psahns before all the army with as much cour- age as he would lead it to victory." His were the characteristicts of the true hero. An ear- nest religious conviction united with great military zeal and skill. His pietyin no way detracted from his military duties. In the British army there was none more resolute or steadfast than Havelock. "And by a happy accident," says the Westminster Review, " thcro was allotted to him just such a duty as his 402 CHRISTIAIT SOLDIERS. soul loved. It was a time of sore trial for British India. The rebels were in the first flush of success. Kegiment after regiment had fallen away from our standard. The British authority seemed to have dissolved all over the Northwest. In the lower provinces there were not more than some two thousand British soldiers to uphold our dominion. There was a general panic in Calcutta. It was then that Havelock was called to the command of the troops j)roceeding northward. The extraordi- naiy series of efforts by which he retrieved our fortunes, beat back the torrent of revolt, wrought quick vengeance upon the fiend of Bithoor, and finally, after nine victories gained against armies numbering from ten to twenty thousand men, he succeeded in fio-htins: his way, in spite of every obstacle, to the Luck- now Kesidency, and in averting its hourly im- minent fall, is a portion of the history of this mutiny most familiar to the British public. In all this astonishing enter jDrise, pursued under the burning: sun of an Indian summer, the great merit of Havelock is this, that with un- CHRISTIAK SOLDIEES. 403 flinching tenacity of purpose, lie stuck to his one cLief object — tlie relief of Lucknow. From -tlie task wliicli he set before himself at starting he never turned aside. Onward, with iron stead- fastness, he urged it through all hazards ; on- ward, through rain, sun and fever; onward, through countless hosts of a desperate enemy, with the motto — ' Eemember Cawnpore — Re- member the ladies !' No knight of romance strove more earnestly for the Holy Grail — no Crusader more stubbornly pursued his sacred pilgrimage." Havelock waited long for the work of his life. "Toiling painfully and obscurely for nearly half a century of the best years of his life, the work came at last to him which he Avas to do. He did it and died. He lived to see the crowning of his noble purpose, but not to receive the full meed of his country's appro- bation. The brave spirit had worked out its puny tenement, and S2:)ed to the God of its faithful service. Since the death of Nelson and of Moore, never death of any man has excited in England such wide and deep sorrow — a sorrow 404 CHEISTIAN SOLDIERS. almost domestic in every Englisli home." — • Westminster Hevieiv on Indian Heroes. Havelock was remarkable for his diligence, sobriety, strength of intellect and soldierly bearing, as well as for his i^iety. When com- pelled to remain inactive, in the daily routine of camp or 230st duty, he spent his time in the study of languages, of military science and the history of war, in the discipline of his troops and in the religious instruction of the men under his charge. He devoted himself so suc- cessfully to the study of Oriental languages that he became military interpreter in the British army in Persia and Burmah. It is ob- vious that one of the great evils of the military service is the idle time that hangs on the hands of young officers, at isolated or remote posts. But it is within their power to turn all their time to advantage. Havelock passed nearly half a century in preparation for the crowning events of his life. Twelve years between the Burmese war and the Affghanistan war, he spent in the daily routine of military duties. But he lost no time. For it was then that CHRISTIAN SOIDIERS. 405 Oriental langiinges and the science and liis- toiy of ^var, and religious literature and tlie work of Christian missions occupied his time. ^ Havelock ^vas proud of his profession and loved active military service. The profile view of any such man must therefore be manifestly unjust. We must take a full face view, recon- ciling as well as we can his Christian character with his deeds as a warrior ; and to do this we have first decided that the 2:>rofession of arms is not in itself sinful, though we believe almost all wars are unjustifiable, wicked and unneces- sary. But we do not see how a subaltern offi- cer or a private is an}^ more guilty for serving in an unjustifiable war than tlie citizens who pay taxes to support it, And besides, who- is to decide on the character of a war ? Is every private to sit in judgment on the war before he consent's to obey orders and fight? This is subversive at once of all government. The powers that be are to be obeyed by Christians in going to war as in other things, except where their commands are clearly contrary to the commandments of God. So the early 406 CIIRISTIAlsr SOLDIEES. Christians understood the Gospel j)recepts on this subject. Some of the best sohliers in the armies of the pagan emperor of Rome were devout Christians. They considered it their duty as Christians to pray for them and to fight for the empire. General Havelock's greatness of character, then, seems to us to have consisted of his stronic common sense, vio;orous intellect and abiding religious impressions from early youth. The reli2:ious training^ of his mother is seen in all his career. The child of six years under his father's roof in Kent was father to the man and to the hero dying in India. The man of sixty was seen in his boyhood as through an inserted telescope. His military greatness was not a mere chance. Nor was it the growth of an hour, but the ripe fruit of a lifetime of severe study, of self-denial, of self-government, obedience to orders, strict temperance, and of arduous service for his country, both in the camp and in the field. He was himself an ex- ample of what he wished his men to be. A most rigid disciplinarian for the drill, and in CHRISTIAN SOLDIERS. 40 7 action lie led Lis men tlirouixli tlie most stlrrino; scenes witli the coolness and accuracy of a parade drill. The foundation of his great suc- cess was laid in the fearlessness of his course and in the open, honest, full-heartedness of his relio:ious faith. '' It was not in Havelock's na- ture to hide his colors. His uniform did not more fully declare his profession as a military man, than did his uniform Christian conduct, his position in the church militant." " His en- listment was as hearty under the banner of the Lion of the tril)e of Judali as under the lion of Britain. He is an illustrious example, both from the lustre of his name and the lustre of his course, and from the dark sky out of which his star shone so steadily in its undimmed, ever-in- creasing brilliance." — Boardmaii's Higher Life, " Come and see how a Christian can die. I have so ruled my life for more than forty years, that when it came I might face death without fear. I die happy and contented. Thank God for my hope in the Saviour. We shall meet in heaven." "I am not in the least afraid. To die is gain. I die happy and contented." And 408 CHEISTIxVlS' SOLDIERS. Lis List wcrds were to Lis L)ving son, wlio Lad sLared ivitL Lim tLe perils of tLe battle-iiekl, " Come." said Le, " come, my son, and see Low a CLristian can die." SncL is tLe end of an uprigLt and pious man. In deatL tranquil, confident, Lopeful, joyous. SucL is tLe end of tLose tliat live a life of faitli upon tLe son of God, rejoicing in CLrist Jesus, but witLout any confidence in tLe flesL. GENEEAL JACKSOIs^. " There gleams a coronet of light around our hero's brow." Our sketcLes would be sadly defective without a reference to General Andrew Jackson. Pliny, in Lis letter to Atrius Clemens, says tliat Le Lad " an opportunity to look into EupLrates, tLe pLilosopLer, being frequently at Lis Louse, and tLat Le knew Lim to be a sLining example of polite learning." It was our privilege for a considerable time to know General Jackson, and to be often as guest and pastor in Lis Lospitable mansion, and even sLare Lis own private cLam- AEMY OF THE DEAD STILL SPEAKING. 43 B and not in vain, for missives of love. And General Jackson's ardent attacliment to his wife, and reverence for his mother's memory, is proverbial. JSTot long before his death, he said : " Heaven will be no heaven for me, if I do not meet my wife . there." 'No man loved little children more fervently, nor enjoyed the bliss of the family circle with greater satisfac- tion. He never seemed more hapj)y than with one of the little ones of his household on his knee, or in his arms. His favorite recreation, as long as he was able to mount his horse, was to take one of the little children before him on the saddle and ride over his farm. Now^ w^hat such men as Vicars, Hammond, Jackson and Havelock have done, others should imitate. Indeed it seems to be a law^ of our nature, that great men who are loving and pure, tender and affectionate at home, are as bold and fearless as lions abroad or in the defence of their country and the inmates of their homes. The names we have given prove the possibility and illustrate the imperative duty of maintaining religious principles in the 19 434 AKJIY OF THE DEAD STILL SPEAKING. camp as well as at liome, and sliow that sol- diers should jDreserve the conjugal and parental relations untarnished even to the ends of the earth, or the utmost bounds of the ocean. 2. These cases illustrate, that mere human virtues are not to he substituted for repentance toward God and faith in Jesus Christ. Vir- tuous and patriotic in the highest sense, unsel- fish, benevolent, kind, forgiving, temperate, truthful, sound-minded and right-hearted, and full of deeds of greatest courage, yet faith in Christ was added as the only way of salvation. We have found Cornelius believing wifch all his heart upon Christ as soon as he is j)reached to him, and submitting himself to the righteous- ness of God. And so did Havelock and Jack- son. They believed in Christ and depended upon him alone for salvation. By faith they were justified and their sins forgiven. They were accepted in the Beloved, and made com- plete in Christ. Their example says, depend not upon loyalty, patriotism and courage, nor upon more than Eoman virtue. Be a good father, a good neighbor, a faithful and tender AR:^rY OF THE DEAD STHL SPEAKIXG. 435 liusLand, a good citizen, but depend not upon 'tLese tilings for justification in tlie siglit of God. When you are all these, you have no merit at all. You are still a sinner ag^ainst God, and must acce})t of pardon through his Son Jesus Christ. You must take him as he is offered in the Gospel, a j^rophet, j)i'iest and king, a complete, all-mighty, willing Saviour. " The blood of Christ," and " the merits of aton- ing blood " and " the sufferings of the Son of God for us sinners," were favorite expressions of both Havelock and Jackson. 3. We learn from these cases, tliat opposition to religion^ and even perseciition for our faitl}^ must not cause us to deny it. Joseph of Arima- thea, the centurions of Capernaum, of the Crucifixion and of Cesarea, w^ere under pecu- liar temptations to deny Jesus ; but they felt their obligations to him to be paramount to all others. Xor are our modern military heroes wanting in moral courage. Whenever Have- lock's convictions of duty were ascertained, no sarcasm, nor contempt, nor sting of the scoffer, nor charge of fanaticism, or of pietism, could 436 AEMY OF THE DEAD STILL SPEAKESTG. move him from doing liis duty. Obedience to God was liis highest standard. It was his con stant effort to preserve a conscience void of offence toward Grod and toward man. And when he was reproached with being a fanatical Baptist, a ranting Methodist, a pietist, the Go- vernor-General of India examined the charges, and Avas so delighted with the discij^line and influence he had over his men, that he said he wished to God Havelock had baptized the whole army. And General Jackson not only ahvays main- tained a high regard for the Bible, the Church and her ministers and ordinances, but he was always ready to avow his convictions in their behalf. He was never ashamed of the catechism of his mother, nor of the religion of his wife. " The holy Sabbath," said he, " is ordained by God, and set apart to be devoted to his wor- ship and praise. I always keep it as God's holy day. I always attended service at church when I could." 4. Let us learn, wherever we are, or in what- ever profession or business we may be, to try to AEMY OF THE DJ:AD STILL SPEAKING. 437 do good. One centurion we find building a synagogue for tlie Jews at Capernaum; ano- ther, Cornelius, giving alms to all tlie people, and another saving the life of Paul and other prisoners from the violence of the soldiers. And at the Shivey Dagoon of Rangoon and on the beach after a shipwreck, and on the tented field and at Jellalabad, and at' Cawnpore and Lucknow, we have Havelock always a confessor for Christ, and fervent in his prayers and efforts to make him known to his soldiers. x\nd when but a subaltern, we find him sacredly devotino* one-tenth of his entire income to reli- gious purposes. Though one of the bravest of the brave, and one of the most active soldiers for forty years, spent in camps and armies, in marches and sieges, he always found time for prayer and the reading of God's holy w^ord. And so also the church at the Hermitage was built, and rebuilt and kept up chiefly by the contributions and influence of General Jackson. He was not only generous as Hatem in his hos- pitalities, but his purse was always open for the support of ministers of the Gospel. He 438 AEMY or THE DEAD 'STILL SPEAKI^-G. never was appealed to in vain for the poor, or for aid to support tlie worship of God. Gen- erosity is closely allied with bravery. 5. These histories teach us to be catliolic in .our feelings. The learned professions and the studies and pursuits of military and naval science, travel and acquaintance with mankind have a tendency to liberalize our ideas, but this is perhaps preeminently so with soldiers and sailors. In the almsgivings of Cornelius, the synagogue built at Capernaum for the Jew^s by a Roman centurion, and the kindness of Julius toward Paul, we have instances of vic- tory over national prejudices and all narrow- ness of mind. Now while we have no sympa- thy with indifferentism or latitudinarianism, we do hold it to be a high Christian duty to love and fellowship all who love our Lord Je- sus Christ in sincerity. We have no sympa- thy with an exclusive, intolerant bigotry. Wherever the sj^irit of Christ is, there we acknowledge Christ himself; and we know that if we have not the spirit of Christ we are none of his, A happy instance of the catho- AEMY OF THE DEAD STILL SPEAKING. 43^ licity of General Havelock is found in Ms fel- lowship witli tlie Presbyterians of tlie Free Cliurcli of Scotland at Bombay, witli tlie mem- bers of which he delighted to worship. " He took a part in their prayer-meetings, and his Hand and purse were both open to assist them in carrying out their various plans for the edu- cation and religious instruction of the natives. Havelock was wholly destitute of that narrow sectarian prejudice which impairs^ the excellence of so many even true Christians. He communea with all evangelical denominations^ and regard- ed creeds as of small consequence com]yared with true ])iety. Once in a meeting at Bom- bay, this question of denomination being re- ferred to, he explained fully and freely his views. Though he ^ should part,' he said, ' with his Baptist principles only with his life, he was willing cordially to fraternize with every Chris- tian who held by the Head, and was serving the Bedeemer in sincerity and truth. And here he would protest against its being alleged, as adversaries would insinuate, that when men of various denominations met as this evening, 440 AEMY OF THE DEAD STILL SPEAKLISra in a feeling of brotlierliood, tliey could only do this by paring down to tlie smallest portion, tlie mass of his religion; on the contrary, he conceived that all brought with them their faith in all its strength and vitality. They left, indeed, he thought, at the door of the place of assembly, the husks and shell of their creed, but brought into the midst of their breth- ren the precious kernel. They laid aside, for a moment, at the threshold, the canons, and articles, and formularies of their section of Christianity, but carried along with them, up to the table at which he was speaking, the very essence and quintessence of their religion.' " — Headleifs Life of Havelock. Such feelino-s we believe are common with enlightened minds, but especially so with brave men. They love piety better than creed. No man disliked petty jealousies and narrow sectarian feelings and denominational shibbo- leths more cordially than General Jackson. Though a Presbyterian by birth, education, con- viction and preference, both as to doctrines and modes of worship — as to faith and church AEMY OF THE DEAD STILL SPEAKING. 441 order and government — still liis views on reli- gious subjects were truly broad and catholic. No man was "more ardently devoted to religious freedom, nor more tolerant of the rights of con- science. 6. Let us learn that no circumstances, how- ever unfavorable to pious efforts, are a suffi- cient excuse for neglecting personal religion. The Koman centurion of Capernaum and of Cesarea were remarkable for their attention to their households. Their education, position, and profession were much in the way of their devotion to God, yet we find them overcoming every obstacle. And surely no man could have greater turmoil and care than Havelock had in Affghanistan and Oude, yet his religious habits were kept up without intermission. He was not a day without his Bible, and often en- gaged not only in silent prayer, but in its out- ward act. It was a special object with him, somehow or other, to be left alone both morning and evening, that he might bow down and wor- ship God. He was constantly at church or chapel whenever an opportunity was offered. The 442 ARMY OF THE DEAD STILL SPEAKI:N^G. first tiling everywliere witli him was tlie Idiig dom of God and liis rio^liteousness. His whole life, and liis death declare that " where there is a will to serve God, there is a way." Vicars and Hammond also found time for much pious meditation upon God's Word. And we have seen also that General Jackson was never with- out his Bible, and always attended church when he could. Surely, then, the distractions of business, the urgencies of a learned profession, and even the anxieties of the tent and of the battle-field, are no excuse for neglecting the one thing needful. What has been done may be done again — may be done by American sol- diers. The speaking dead, the voices from glory, all -" Remind us, We can make our lives sublime, And departing, leave behind us Footprints on the sands of time — "Footprints, that perhaps another, Sailing o'er life's solemn main, A forlorn and shipwrecked brother, Seeing, shall take heart again. AEMY OF TUE DEAD STILL SPEAKING. 443 " Let us, then, be up and doing, With a heart for any fate. Still achieving, still pursuing, Learn to labor and to wait," THE E Is^ D , Princeton Theological Seminat7 Libraries 1 1012 01208 0570 DATE DUE ^JWBBI B^^HMMMuip. -^^,Sif^^ w HIGHSMITH#45115 "/'^'•^''M.^.•■■'^^■ * ^vr J ' . ' ''/■>(.